Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n church_n particular_a pillar_n 1,653 5 10.8048 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27363 The Notes of the church as laid down by Cardinal Bellarmin examined and confuted : with a table of contents. Sherlock, William, 1641?-1707. 1688 (1688) Wing B1823; ESTC R32229 267,792 461

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

omit_v personal_n contest_v but_o insert_v whatsoever_o concern_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o protestant_n or_o defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o a_o exact_a table_n of_o content_n and_o a_o addition_n of_o some_o genuine_a piece_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n never_o before_o print_v viz._n against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n transubstantiation_n tradition_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o account_n of_o what_o move_v the_o author_n to_o turn_v papist_n with_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o say_a motive_n a_o historical_a treatise_n write_v by_o a_o author_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v transubstantiation_n wherein_o be_v make_v appear_v that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o church_n this_o doctrine_n can_v be_v a_o article_n of_o faith._n 40._o the_o protestant_n companion_n or_o a_o impartial_a survey_n and_o comparison_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o by_o law_n establish_v with_o the_o main_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n wherein_o be_v show_v that_o popery_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n primitive_a father_n and_o council_n and_o that_o prove_v from_o holy_a writ_n the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o several_a hundred_o year_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a papist_n themselves_o 40._o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n a_o treatise_n show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n false_o claim_v to_o be_v that_o church_n and_o the_o pillar_n of_o that_o truth_n mention_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n chap._n 3._o verse_n 15._o 4o._o the_o people_n right_a to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n assert_v 4o._o a_o short_a summary_n of_o the_o principal_a controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o vindication_n of_o several_a protestant_a doctrine_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v protestancy_n destitute_a of_o scripture_n proof_n 4o._o a_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v the_o judgement_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n concern_v one_o special_a branch_n of_o the_o king_n prerogative_n viz._n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o penal_a law_n 4o._o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o the_o two_o great_a point_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o two_o discourse_n late_o print_v at_o oxford_n on_o this_o subject_a to_o which_o be_v perfix_v a_o large_a historical_a preface_n relate_v to_o the_o same_o argument_n two_o discourse_n of_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o fifteen_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o lay_v down_o by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n examine_v and_o confute_v 4o._o with_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n preparation_n for_o death_n be_v a_o letter_n send_v to_o a_o young_a gentlewoman_n in_o france_n in_o a_o dangerous_a distemper_n of_o which_o she_o die_v by_o w._n w._n 12o._o the_o difference_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o opposition_n to_o a_o late_a book_n entitle_v a_o agreement_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o private_a prayer_n to_o be_v use_v in_o difficult_a time_n a_o true_a account_n of_o a_o conference_n hold_v about_o religion_n at_o london_n sept._n 29_o 1687_o between_o a._n pulton_n jesuit_n and_o tho._n tenison_n d._n d._n as_o also_o of_o that_o which_o lead_v to_o it_o and_o follow_v after_o it_o 4o._o the_o vindication_n of_o a._n cressener_n schoolmaster_n in_o long-acre_n from_o the_o aspersion_n of_o a._n pulton_n jesuit_n schoolmaster_n in_o the_o savoy_n together_o with_o some_o account_n of_o his_o discourse_n with_o mr._n meredith_n a_o discourse_n show_v that_o protestant_n be_v on_o the_o safe_a side_n notwithstanding_o the_o uncharitable_a judgement_n of_o their_o adversary_n and_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o sure_a way_n to_o heaven_n 4o._o six_o conference_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n wherein_o be_v show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n overthrow_v the_o proof_n of_o christian_a religion_n a_o discourse_n concern_v the_o pretend_a sacrament_n of_o extreme_a unction_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o occasion_n and_o beginning_n of_o it_o in_o the_o western_a church_n in_o three_o part_n with_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o vindicator_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n the_o pamphlet_n entitle_v speculum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la or_o a_o ecclesiastical_a prospective-glass_n consider_v in_o its_o false_a reason_n and_o quotation_n there_o be_v add_v by_o way_n of_o preface_n two_o further_a answer_n the_o first_o to_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o speculum_fw-la the_o second_o to_o the_o half-sheet_n against_o the_o six_o conference_n a_o second_o defence_n of_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o the_o new_a exception_n of_o mons_fw-la de_fw-fr meaux_n late_a bishop_n of_o condom_n and_o his_o vindicator_n the_o first_o part_n in_o which_o the_o account_n that_o have_v be_v give_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o meaux_n exposition_n be_v full_o vindicated_n the_o distinction_n of_o old_a and_o new_a popery_n historical_o assert_v and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o point_n of_o image-worship_n more_o particular_o consider_v 40._o the_o incurable_a scepticism_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o six_o conference_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n 40._o mr._n pulton_n consider_v in_o his_o sincerity_n reason_v authority_n or_o a_o just_a answer_n to_o what_o he_o have_v hitherto_o publish_v in_o his_o true_a account_n his_o true_a and_o full_a account_n of_o a_o conference_n etc._n etc._n his_o remark_n and_o in_o they_o his_o pretend_a confutation_n of_o what_o he_o call_v dr._n it_o be_v rule_n of_o faith._n by_o tho._n tenison_n d._n d._n a_o full_a view_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n relate_v to_o the_o eucharist_n whole_o different_a from_o those_o of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o sufficient_a confutation_n of_o consensus_fw-la veterum_fw-la nubes_fw-la testium_fw-la and_o other_o late_a collection_n of_o the_o father_n pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a 40._o a_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n with_o some_o reflection_n on_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n license_v april_n 6._o 1687._o jo._n batte_o london_n print_v for_o ric._n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n mdclxxxvii_o page_n 11._o l._n 15._o for_o character_n r._n charter_n and_o p._n 14._o l._n 8._o r._n charter_n p._n 16._o l._n 12._o after_o ancient_n and_o apostolic_a church_n add_v which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o his_o second_o note_n concern_v antiquity_n which_o must_v refer_v to_o the_o antiquity_n of_o its_o doctrine_n for_o a_o ancient_a church_n though_o found_v many_o year_n since_o if_o it_o have_v innovate_v in_o doctrine_n can_v plead_v antiquity_n and_o a_o church_n found_v but_o yesterday_o which_o profess_v the_o ancient_a faith_n may_v p._n 18._o l._n 6._o f._n first_o r._n five_o p._n 22._o l._n 14._o f._n now_o r._n more_o a_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n if_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n have_v not_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o be_v a_o most_o profitable_a controversy_n ecclesiae_fw-la controu._n t._n 2._o l._n 4_o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la i_o shall_v very_o much_o have_v wonder_v at_o that_o pain_n which_o he_o and_o so_o many_o other_o of_o their_o great_a divine_n have_v take_v to_o find_v out_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n visible_a and_o if_o we_o can_v see_v which_o be_v this_o church_n what_o need_v we_o guess_v at_o it_o by_o mark_n and_o sign_n and_o that_o by_o such_o mark_n and_o sign_n too_o as_o be_v matter_n of_o dispute_n themselves_o can_v we_o distinguish_v between_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o a_o turkish_a mosque_n or_o jewish_a synagogue_n or_o pagan_a temple_n can_v we_o without_o all_o this_o ado_n distinguish_v a_o christian_a from_o a_o turk_n or_o a_o jew_n or_o a_o pagan_a and_o it_o will_v be_v as_o easy_a to_o find_v out_o a_o christian_a church_n as_o it_o be_v to_o find_v out_o christian_n for_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n unite_v under_o christian_a pastor_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o christ_n and_o where_o ever_o we_o find_v such_o a_o society_n as_o this_o there_o be_v a_o christian_a church_n and_o all_o such_o particular_a or_o national_a church_n all_o the_o world_n over_o make_v up_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n or_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o this_o will_v not_o do_v the_o cardinal_n business_n though_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v visible_a enough_o yet_o not_o such_o a_o church_n as_o he_o
of_o christ_n now_o so_o far_o as_o bellarmin_n note_n belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n so_o far_o we_o allow_v they_o and_o let_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v the_o best_a of_o they_o she_o can_v for_o we_o doubt_v not_o to_o make_v our_o claim_n to_o they_o as_o good_a and_o much_o better_a than_o she_o but_o he_o have_v name_v very_o few_o such_o the_o 6_o the_o agreement_n and_o consent_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o ancient_n and_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o 8_o the_o holiness_n of_o its_o doctrine_n be_v the_o chief_n if_o not_o the_o only_a note_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o these_o we_o will_v stand_v and_o fall_v by_o many_o of_o his_o other_o be_v not_o proper_o the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o be_v testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o common_a christianity_n which_o be_v profess_v by_o all_o true_a church_n and_o if_o they_o be_v note_n of_o the_o church_n so_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n have_v a_o share_n in_o they_o such_o as_o his_o 9th_o the_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n the_o 10_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o first_o author_n and_o father_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o i_o suppose_v the_o holiness_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n give_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o common_a christianity_n and_o therefore_o to_o all_o church_n who_o profess_v the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n the_o 11_o the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n which_o also_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o i_o hope_v a_o little_a better_o than_o popish_a miracle_n do_v transubstantiation_n the_o 12_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n which_o as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v a_o good_a note_n belong_v to_o the_o religion_n not_o to_o the_o church_n other_o note_n he_o assign_v which_o i_o doubt_v will_v prove_v no_o note_n at_o all_o as_o 13_o 14_o 15._o because_o they_o be_v not_o always_o true_a and_o at_o best_a uncertain_a his_o three_o and_o four_o note_n be_v not_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o god_n promise_v make_v to_o his_o church_n as_o of_o a_o long_a duration_n that_o it_o shall_v never_o fail_v and_o amplitude_n or_o extent_n and_o multitude_n of_o believer_n these_o promise_v we_o believe_v god_n will_v fulfil_v to_o his_o church_n but_o they_o can_v be_v no_o note_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o can_v never_o be_v a_o note_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n that_o church_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o a_o bare_a long_a continuance_n be_v no_o mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o a_o apostatical_a church_n may_v continue_v by_o the_o patience_n and_o forbearance_n of_o god_n many_o hundred_o year_n and_o be_v destroy_v at_o last_o and_o then_o this_o argument_n of_o a_o long_a duration_n be_v confute_v and_o as_o for_o amplitude_n and_o extent_n that_o be_v not_o to_o distinguish_v one_o christian_a church_n from_o another_o that_o the_o most_o numerous_a church_n shall_v be_v the_o true_a but_o to_o distinguish_v the_o christian_a church_n from_o all_o other_o religion_n and_o then_o i_o doubt_v this_o prophecy_n have_v not_o receive_v its_o just_a accomplishment_n yet_o for_o though_o we_o take_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o not_o exclude_v the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v yet_o they_o bear_v but_o a_o small_a proportion_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world._n and_o now_o there_o be_v but_o three_o of_o his_o fifteen_o note_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v the_o first_o concern_v the_o name_n catholic_n which_o make_v every_o church_n a_o catholic_n church_n which_o will_v call_v itself_o so_o tho_o catholic_n do_v not_o declare_v what_o a_o church_n be_v but_o in_o what_o communion_n it_o be_v and_o be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v first_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v true_a church_n which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o each_o other_o for_o if_o three_o part_n in_o four_o of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v very_o corrupt_a and_o degenerate_a in_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o be_v in_o one_o communion_n this_o will_v be_v the_o most_o catholic_n communion_n as_o catholic_n signify_v the_o most_o general_a and_o universal_a but_o yet_o the_o four_o part_n which_o be_v sincere_a will_v be_v the_o best_a and_o true_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o that_o signify_v the_o communion_n of_o all_o orthodox_n and_o pure_a church_n his_o first_o note_n be_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o apostle_n till_o now_o this_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v as_o good_a a_o note_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o any_o church_n which_o have_v be_v late_a plant_v who_o have_v bishop_n in_o succession_n from_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a bishop_n by_o this_o note_n be_v as_o good_a church_n as_o they_o so_o that_o this_o be_v a_o note_n common_a to_o all_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o can_v do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o service_n his_o seven_o note_n indeed_o be_v home_n to_o his_o purpose_n that_o that_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o its_o head._n if_o he_o can_v prove_v this_o it_o must_v do_v his_o business_n without_o any_o other_o note_n but_o that_o will_v be_v examine_v hereafter_o but_o it_o be_v like_o the_o confidence_n of_o a_o jesuit_n to_o make_v that_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a subject_n of_o the_o dispute_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o belong_v to_o all_o true_a church_n for_o though_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o true_a particular_a church_n which_o make_v up_o this_o catholic_n church_n as_o homogeneal_a part_n which_o have_v all_o the_o same_o nature_n but_o now_o very_a few_o of_o the_o cardinal_n note_n belong_v to_o all_o true_a church_n and_o those_o which_o do_v so_o signify_v nothing_o to_o his_o purpose_n because_o they_o be_v common_a to_o more_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o as_o for_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v know_v only_o by_o particular_a church_n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o union_n of_o all_o true_a church_n in_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o one_o communion_n as_o far_o as_o distinct_a church_n at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o each_o other_o be_v capable_a of_o it_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n but_o by_o know_v all_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o either_o be_v in_o actual_a communion_n with_o one_o another_o or_o be_v in_o a_o disposition_n for_o it_o whenever_o occasion_n be_v offer_v for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n all_o the_o world_n over_o shall_v ever_o join_v in_o any_o visible_a and_o external_a act_n of_o communion_n and_o therefore_o though_o we_o know_v and_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_n church_n because_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o all_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o one_o church_n the_o one_o body_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v next_o to_o impossible_a to_o know_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n without_o which_o we_o can_v know_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n because_o we_o can_v know_v all_o the_o particular_a true_a church_n all_o the_o world_n over_o nor_o indeed_o be_v there_o any_o need_n we_o shall_v for_o we_o may_v certain_o know_v which_o be_v a_o true_o catholic_n church_n without_o know_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n for_o every_o church_n which_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n and_o impose_v only_a catholic_n term_n of_o communion_n and_o be_v ready_a out_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o brotherly_a love_n and_o charity_n that_o cement_n of_o catholic_n communion_n to_o communicate_v with_o all_o church_n and_o to_o receive_v all_o church_n to_o her_o communion_n upon_o these_o term_n be_v a_o true_o catholic_n church_n which_o show_v how_o ridiculous_a it_o be_v to_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n our_o first_o inquiry_n and_o to_o pretend_v to_o give_v note_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n by_o before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a particular_a church_n be_v but_o the_o mystery_n of_o this_o will_v appear_v more_o in_o what_o follow_v 3_o for_o another_o mystery_n of_o find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o note_n be_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n
how_o shall_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n pap._n why_o this_o you_o must_v examine_v by_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n whereof_o one_o and_o that_o a_o principal_a one_o be_v sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n or_o a_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n protest_v but_o good_a sir_n can_v i_o not_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n till_o i_o be_o first_o certain_a that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n pap._n no._n protest_v why_o then_o i_o must_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o those_o matter_n of_o faith_n whereof_o its_o profession_n consist_v before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n pap._n you_o must_v so_o protest_v but_o pray_v how_o shall_v i_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o you_o tell_v i_o just_a now_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a i_o shall_v ever_o be_v true_o certain_a when_o as_o yet_o i_o know_v no_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n pap._n why_o have_v you_o not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n protest_v but_o as_o yet_o i_o be_o not_o certain_a that_o the_o church_n upon_o who_o authority_n you_o will_v have_v i_o believe_v be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a of_o this_o with_o what_o certainty_n can_v i_o depend_v upon_o her_o authority_n will_v you_o have_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o whatsoever_o she_o profess_v be_v true_a upon_o her_o own_o bare_a word_n and_o authority_n before_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o so_o why_o may_v i_o not_o as_o well_o believe_v any_o other_o church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n see_v there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n but_o what_o will_v pass_v its_o word_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o own_o profession_n as_o well_o as_o you_o if_o not_o you_o must_v allow_v i_o to_o have_v some_o other_o ground_n of_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n beside_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o before_o i_o can_v secure_o rely_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n as_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n i_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o my_o certainty_n that_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n must_v depend_v upon_o my_o certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o those_o matter_n of_o faith_n comprise_v in_o her_o profession_n so_o that_o before_o i_o be_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o her_o profession_n it_o be_v too_o soon_o for_o i_o to_o rely_v upon_o her_o authority_n as_o the_o only_a ground_n of_o certainty_n and_o when_o i_o be_o certain_a of_o it_o it_o be_v too_o late_o because_o i_o be_o certain_a already_o four_o and_o last_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v authority_n to_o the_o true_a church_n to_o impose_v upon_o man_n mind_n a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v such_o thing_n as_o before_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v for_o she_o make_v the_o church_n authority_n not_o only_o a_o concurrent_a motive_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o very_a formal_a reason_n of_o it_o so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o only_o oblige_v to_o believe_v what_o the_o church_n declare_v but_o we_o be_v therefore_o oblige_v to_o believe_v it_o because_o she_o declare_v it_o it_o be_v true_a some_o of_o the_o roman_a doctor_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o that_o see_v there_o some_o old_a truth_n in_o scripture_n and_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o church_n have_v not_o yet_o declare_v and_o which_o therefore_o man_n be_v not_o yet_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n have_v authority_n when_o ever_o she_o think_v meet_v to_o declare_v they_o and_o thereby_o to_o oblige_v man_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o other_o of_o they_o and_o particular_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la sum._n pontif._n tell_v we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o late_a time_n not_o only_o have_v power_n to_o explain_v and_o declare_v but_o also_o to_o constitute_v and_o command_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith._n and_o indeed_o the_o difference_n between_o declare_v and_o constitute_v or_o make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v only_o verbal_a for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o truth_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o therefore_o if_o the_o church_n by_o declare_v a_o truth_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v make_v it_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v it_o thereby_o make_v that_o truth_n a_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith._n and_o so_o to_o declare_v and_o to_o make_v be_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n but_o in_o this_o they_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v power_n to_o make_v those_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o so_o before_o and_o if_o this_o be_v true_a no_o man_n can_v ever_o be_v certain_a by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n that_o he_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n for_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o church_n as_o for_o instance_n the_o roman_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n i_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o that_o church_n profession_n be_v true_a but_o when_o i_o proceed_v to_o examine_v the_o particular_a article_n of_o it_o as_o i_o must_v do_v before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o shall_v find_v there_o be_v several_a of_o they_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o which_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o several_a even_o of_o she_o own_o doctor_n i_o have_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o be_v certain_a either_o in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n which_o while_o i_o be_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n i_o have_v whereby_o to_o examine_v they_o as_o particular_o transubstantiation_n seven_o sacrament_n necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n roman_a purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n vid._n note_v the_o six_o pag._n 125._o etc._n etc._n and_o if_o these_o roman_a doctor_n pretend_v to_o be_v certain_a of_o they_o upon_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o their_o church_n which_o they_o be_v sure_o be_v the_o true_a church_n have_v declare_v they_o how_o shall_v i_o be_v certain_a of_o they_o who_o be_o but_o a_o enquirer_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o and_o therefore_o as_o yet_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v for_o without_o her_o declaration_n they_o themselves_o confess_v i_o have_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o and_o till_o i_o be_o sure_a she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n her_o declaration_n be_v no_o ground_n of_o certainty_n to_o i_o and_o as_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o these_o article_n be_v true_a till_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o the_o church_n which_o declare_v they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n so_o suppose_v that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v power_n to_o impose_v upon_o i_o a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v such_o thing_n as_o before_o i_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v false_a because_o no_o authority_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v a_o right_a to_o impose_v upon_o man_n such_o a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v but_o what_o be_v infallible_a and_o can_v impose_v what_o be_v false_a on_o they_o unless_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o man_n may_v be_v rightful_o oblige_v to_o believe_v what_o be_v false_a if_o therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v it_o may_v then_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v it_o have_v authority_n from_o god_n to_o impose_v upon_o i_o a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v whatever_o she_o declare_v and_o consequent_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v she_o be_v infallible_a but_o as_o for_o myself_o i_o know_v that_o i_o be_o a_o fallible_a creature_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o infallibility_n declare_v to_o i_o must_v certain_o be_v true_a whatsoever_o probability_n yea_o or_o seem_a demonstration_n i_o may_v have_v against_o it_o how_o then_o can_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o article_n be_v false_a which_o be_v declare_v to_o i_o by_o a_o church_n that_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v be_v infallible_a if_o it_o be_v infallible_a i_o be_o sure_a that_o whatever_o it_o declare_v be_v true_a and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n it_o must_v be_v infallible_a suppose_v that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v authority_n to_o impose_v new_a necessity_n of_o believe_v but_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o be_v the_o thing_n i_o be_o now_o inquire_v by_o this_o note_n of_o
virtutes_fw-la magnas_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la facere_fw-la sublimis_fw-la utique_fw-la &_o admirabilis_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la regnum_fw-la coeleste_fw-la consequitur_fw-la quisquis_fw-la in_o his_o omnibus_fw-la invenitur_fw-la nisi_fw-la recti_fw-la &_o justi_fw-la itineris_fw-la observatione_fw-la gradiatur_fw-la cypr._n de_fw-fr unitat._n eccles_n st._n cyprian_n discourse_v of_o some_o that_o have_v break_v off_o from_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o signalise_v themselves_o by_o miracle_n quote_v that_o passage_n of_o st._n john_n ep._n 1._o ch_n 2._o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o tell_v we_o that_o though_o the_o do_v such_o miracle_n be_v a_o high_a and_o admirable_a thing_n yet_o if_o they_o take_v not_o heed_n to_o go_v in_o the_o just_a and_o right_a way_n it_o give_v they_o no_o title_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n where_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o recti_fw-la &_o justi_fw-la itineris_fw-la observatio_fw-la be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v mere_o a_o good_a and_o virtuous_a life_n for_o that_o be_v acknowledge_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o some_o person_n inward_o wicked_a but_o outward_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n may_v work_v miracle_n as_o probable_o judas_n do_v among_o the_o other_o disciple_n but_o st._n cyprian_n mean_v it_o of_o those_o that_o have_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n and_o through_o schism_n have_v break_v off_o from_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o tenor_n of_o that_o discourse_n carry_v it_o 9_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d irenae_n advers._fw-la haeres_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 9_o irenaeus_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o prodigious_a error_n of_o marcus_n the_o heretic_n and_o yet_o two_o of_o the_o wonder_n he_o do_v viz._n when_o he_o be_v consecrate_v or_o give_v of_o thanks_o over_o the_o cup_n mix_v with_o wine_n draw_v out_o his_o invocation_n to_o a_o mighty_a length_n he_o make_v the_o cup_n appear_v of_o a_o purple_a or_o red_a colour_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o that_o grace_n that_o come_v from_o the_o place_n which_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o invocation_n distil_v its_o own_o blood_n into_o the_o cup_n that_o those_o that_o be_v present_a shall_v vehement_o desire_v to_o taste_v of_o the_o same_o draught_n that_o so_o that_o very_a grace_n boast_v of_o by_o the_o magician_n may_v actual_o flow_v into_o they_o too_o he_o further_a instance_n in_o a_o magic_a trick_n he_o have_v of_o fill_v a_o great_a cup_n with_o a_o much_o less_o and_o to_o the_o view_n of_o other_o inspire_v some_o of_o the_o seduce_v woman_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophesy_v and_o the_o like_a this_o passage_n of_o irenaeus_n be_v quote_v verbatim_o by_o epiphanius_n who_o also_o call_v this_o marcus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o perfect_o skill_a in_o the_o magic_n art._n marcosii_n art._n epiphan_n in_o haeres_fw-la 34._o marcosii_n finem_fw-la marcosii_n august_n exposit_n in_o evang_v johann_n tractat._n 13._o versus_fw-la finem_fw-la st._n austin_n direct_v thus_o let_v no_o man_n say_v he_o vend_fw-mi fable_n among_o you_o both_o pontius_n wrought_v a_o miracle_n and_o donatus_n pray_v and_o god_n answer_v he_o from_o heaven_n first_o either_o they_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o or_o else_o they_o deceive_v other_o however_o suppose_v he_o can_v remove_v mountain_n yet_o say_v the_o apostle_n if_o i_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o he_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o shall_v have_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o have_v not_o divide_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o god_n have_v warn_v i_o against_o such_o wonder-monger_n if_o i_o may_v so_o call_v they_o mirabiliarios_fw-la they_o istos_fw-la mirabiliarios_fw-la in_o the_o latter_a day_n there_o shall_v arise_v false_a prophet_n do_v sign_n and_o wonder_n etc._n etc._n mark_v xiii_o ergo_fw-la cautos_fw-la nos_fw-la fecit_fw-la sponsus_fw-la quia_fw-la miraculis_fw-la decipi_fw-la non_fw-la debemus_fw-la therefore_o have_v our_o lord_n warn_v we_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v deceive_v by_o miracle_n and_o so_o he_o go_v on_o with_o that_o which_o we_o find_v in_o decret_a part_n 2._o caus_n 1._o quaest_n 1._o cap._n 56._o teneamus_fw-la ergo_fw-la unitatem_fw-la fratres_fw-la mei_fw-la praeter_fw-la vnitatem_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la facit_fw-la miracula_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o unity_n out_o of_o this_o unity_n even_o he_o that_o work_v miracle_n be_v nothing_o peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o raise_v the_o dead_a simon_n magus_n do_v many_o thing_n there_o be_v many_o christian_n that_o can_v do_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n neither_o what_o peter_n nor_o what_o simon_n do_v but_o what_o do_v they_o rejoice_v in_o that_o their_o name_n be_v waitten_v in_o heaven_n this_o father_n have_v many_o other_o passage_n of_o this_o kind_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o they_o be_v already_o so_o large_o quote_v in_o that_o excellent_a preface_n before_o the_o school_n of_o the_o eucharist_n late_o make_v english_a that_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n thither_o not_o only_o for_o that_o but_o also_o for_o the_o whole_a argument_n about_o miracle_n which_o may_v just_o have_v supersede_v this_o discourse_n upon_o the_o note_n of_o miracle_n have_v it_o be_v so_o order_v in_o its_o due_a place_n so_o that_o miracle_n mere_o we_o see_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n be_v never_o account_v a_o full_a and_o adequate_a note_n of_o any_o true_a church_n which_o in_o truth_n the_o cardinal_n himself_o after_o the_o great_a foundation_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v lay_v as_o to_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o miracle_n do_v in_o some_o measure_n yield_v when_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o very_a same_o chapter_n 14._o exit_fw-la miraculis_fw-la demonstratur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la quoad_fw-la evidentiam_fw-la vel_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la rei_fw-la sed_fw-la quoad_fw-la evidentiam_fw-la &_o certitudinem_fw-la credibilitatis_fw-la bel._n l._n four_o c._n 14._o that_o the_o church_n be_v demonstrate_v by_o miracle_n not_o as_o to_o the_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o only_o as_o to_o the_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n of_o credibility_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o miracle_n may_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o may_v not_o be_v so_o that_o be_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o note_n by_o which_o we_o may_v give_v a_o good_a guess_n at_o the_o true_a church_n but_o can_v be_v certain_a for_o as_o one_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n express_v it_o miracula_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o diabolo_fw-it christo_fw-la &_o antichristo_fw-la sunt_fw-la communia_fw-la tim._n communia_fw-la espencaeus_fw-la in_o 2_o ad_fw-la tim._n miracle_n be_v common_a to_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n to_o christ_n and_o antichrist_n ii_o if_o miracle_n in_o general_a be_v no_o sufficient_a note_n or_o proof_n of_o any_o church_n whatever_o much_o less_o be_v those_o miracle_n allege_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o confirmation_n of_o those_o particular_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n wherein_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n differ_v from_o they_o much_o less_o i_o say_v be_v they_o any_o just_a note_n of_o their_o church_n or_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o doctrine_n there_o be_v a_o variety_n of_o miracle_n offer_v to_o we_o in_o their_o history_n or_o in_o their_o legend_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o several_a doctrine_n of_o sacramental_a confession_n adoration_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n purgatory_n the_o bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o particular_a person_n that_o have_v flourish_v in_o their_o church_n now_o as_o to_o this_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v these_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v any_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o second_o that_o many_o of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o these_o miracle_n be_v allege_v in_o confirmation_n of_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v express_o assert_v or_o warrant_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o rather_o bear_v a_o direct_a contrariety_n three_o that_o there_o be_v no_o tolerable_a ground_n for_o certainty_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o most_o of_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o romanist_n do_v make_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o church_n first_o that_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v any_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o the_o miracle_n under_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n be_v to_o confirm_v and_o establish_v that_o and_o the_o miracle_n perform_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o i_o have_v already_o intimate_v be_v to_o bring_v in_o and_o establish_v
own_o author_n 11._o the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n these_o alone_o be_v never_o a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o those_o extraordinary_a gift_n which_o be_v bestow_v at_o first_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o christianity_n we_o think_v they_o be_v cease_v long_o ago_o but_o we_o be_v forewarn_v of_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n 24.24_o mat._n 24.24_o which_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n which_o methinks_v shall_v make_v a_o church_n very_o careful_a how_o they_o make_v any_o pretention_n to_o miracle_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v resolve_v to_o do_v it_o and_o will_v fain_o persuade_v we_o that_o there_o be_v many_o great_a one_o wrought_v among_o they_o to_o this_o very_a day_n and_o as_o they_o believe_v always_o will_v be_v but_o we_o know_v and_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v it_o that_o many_o of_o the_o miracle_n they_o have_v talk_v of_o be_v mere_a forgery_n and_o delusion_n other_o altogether_o incredible_a and_o but_o weak_o attest_v and_o whole_o unworthy_a of_o the_o seriousness_n and_o gravity_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n most_o of_o they_o say_v to_o be_v do_v in_o corner_n and_o be_v never_o to_o be_v see_v but_o among_o themselves_o when_o they_o please_v to_o oblige_v we_o protestant_n with_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o few_o of_o they_o they_o may_v then_o deserve_v to_o be_v far_o consider_v till_o that_o be_v do_v they_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o think_v that_o their_o church_n be_v reduce_v to_o great_a strait_n when_o it_o shall_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o slight_a artifices_fw-la as_o these_o to_o support_v it_o 12._o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n this_o if_o they_o have_v it_o can_v bring_v no_o more_o advantage_n to_o their_o cause_n than_o the_o other_o the_o church_n of_o god_n ancient_o when_o extraordinary_a revelation_n be_v more_o common_a have_v not_o always_o prophet_n in_o it_o and_o when_o any_o appear_v the_o prophet_n be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o church_n by_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o we_o be_v still_o command_v to_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n 4.1_o 1_o joh._n 4.1_o because_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world._n 13._o the_o confession_n of_o adversary_n this_o if_o the_o cardinal_n instance_n be_v pertinent_a will_v yet_o be_v but_o of_o little_a consequence_n for_o if_o some_o protestant_n have_v speak_v favourable_o of_o his_o catholic_n some_o of_o his_o catholic_n have_v speak_v favourable_o of_o protestant_n or_o if_o we_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o hope_v well_o of_o some_o of_o they_o as_o we_o be_v and_o they_o shall_v adjudge_v we_o every_o one_o to_o eternal_a damnation_n as_o they_o general_o do_v this_o will_v be_v but_o a_o ill_a sign_n that_o their_o church_n must_v therefore_o be_v the_o true_a because_o it_o be_v more_o censorious_a and_o uncharitable_a than_o we_o 14._o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n a_o wise_a man_n will_v be_v something_o afraid_a of_o pass_v this_o into_o a_o note_n before_o he_o be_v himself_o safe_a in_o his_o grave_n for_o all_o thing_n come_v alike_o to_o all_o 9.2_o eccl._n 9.2_o there_o be_v one_o event_n to_o the_o righteous_a and_o to_o the_o wicked_a many_o of_o the_o most_o zealous_a patron_n of_o the_o romish_a persuasion_n have_v meet_v with_o as_o tragical_a and_o unfortunate_a end_n as_o the_o most_o accurse_a heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v devour_v by_o vermin_n or_o burn_v at_o a_o stake_n 15._o temporal_a felicity_n this_o may_v be_v place_v in_o the_o same_o rank_n with_o the_o former_a it_o be_v altogether_o as_o variable_a and_o inconstant_a as_o that_o no_o certain_a judgement_n can_v be_v make_v upon_o it_o they_o be_v not_o to_o learn_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o their_o church_n have_v be_v often_o successful_a and_o that_o victory_n have_v not_o always_o wait_v upon_o their_o catholic_n arm_n no_o not_o in_o their_o most_o holy_a war_n when_o religion_n have_v be_v the_o only_a ground_n of_o the_o quarrel_n thus_o upon_o a_o review_n of_o all_o the_o note_n in_o order_n as_o they_o be_v muster_v up_o by_o the_o great_a cardinal_n it_o may_v appear_v to_o any_o unprejudiced_a enquirer_n that_o he_o have_v miss_v of_o his_o aim_n for_o that_o they_o be_v either_o no_o note_n of_o a_o church_n at_o all_o or_o not_o proper_a to_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o now_o after_o the_o high_a pretence_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n and_o the_o absolute_a deference_n and_o submission_n which_o they_o say_v be_v due_a unto_o it_o any_o man_n that_o shall_v serious_o consider_v the_o matter_n must_v needs_o wonder_v they_o shall_v have_v no_o sure_a mean_n at_o last_o to_o find_v it_o out_o than_o a_o few_o slight_a and_o improbable_a nay_o some_o of_o they_o very_o vain_a false_a and_o extravagant_a conjecture_n the_o protestant_n who_o they_o will_v not_o allow_v to_o be_v certain_a of_o any_o thing_n have_v far_o better_a evidence_n than_o these_o and_o as_o good_a assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o church_n as_o can_v be_v desire_v for_o we_o think_v the_o true_a faith_n true_a worship_n and_o a_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v unquestionable_o make_v a_o true_a church_n these_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o can_v deny_v to_o be_v the_o great_a and_o necessary_a note_n and_o if_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o come_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o these_o it_o will_v soon_o appear_v which_o communion_n we_o ought_v to_o prefer_v we_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n apostolic_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o brief_o comprise_v in_o the_o three_o creed_n which_o be_v all_o that_o be_v ever_o receive_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o have_v make_v large_a addition_n to_o the_o ancient_a belief_n and_o increase_v the_o number_n of_o the_o article_n from_o twelve_o to_o four_o and_o twenty_o many_o of_o which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o first_o age_n and_o never_o make_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v till_o above_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o worship_v almighty_a god_n and_o none_o but_o he_o and_o unto_o he_o we_o pray_v in_o a_o language_n we_o understand_v through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a mediator_n in_o who_o name_n when_o we_o ask_v we_o be_v sure_a to_o be_v hear_v they_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o worship_n which_o they_o give_v to_o saint_n and_o image_n which_o as_o to_o all_o external_n act_n of_o adoration_n be_v the_o very_a same_o they_o pay_v to_o god_n himself_o and_o when_o their_o address_n be_v direct_v unto_o he_o all_o their_o public_a service_n be_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o they_o set_v up_o to_o themselves_o many_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n when_o they_o can_v tell_v whether_o they_o hear_v they_o but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o god_n have_v never_o promise_v to_o hear_v they_o for_o their_o sake_n we_o receive_v the_o two_o sacrament_n which_o christ_n ordain_v in_o his_o church_n and_o administer_v they_o both_o in_o such_o manner_n and_o form_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v they_o without_o any_o divine_a authority_n have_v make_v seven_o sacrament_n and_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n they_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v offer_v up_o a_o proper_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a they_o adore_v the_o element_n which_o they_o think_v be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o suffer_v the_o laity_n to_o communicate_v but_o in_o one_o kind_n rob_v they_o of_o the_o cup_n contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a institution_n and_o express_v command_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o since_o we_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n true_a worship_n and_o the_o sacrament_n right_o administer_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o be_v not_o deficient_a in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v themselves_o such_o a_o one_o by_o the_o late_a addition_n they_o have_v make_v to_o the_o creed_n and_o their_o many_o deviation_n from_o the_o primitive_a rule_n and_o yet_o they_o will_v be_v continual_o vaunt_v that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o a_o true_a church_n but_o the_o only_a true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o upon_o this_o presumption_n they_o thunder_v out_o their_o anathema_n upon_o all_o christendom_n beside_o and_o confident_o condemn_v they_o for_o a_o company_n of_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a conventicle_n but_o they_o can_v justify_v that_o rash_a and_o uncharitable_a sentence_n nor_o make_v good_a any_o part_n of_o this_o heavy_a charge_n for_o we_o that_o hearty_o believe_v all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n can_v be_v accuse_v of_o heresy_n neither_o be_v we_o guilty_a of_o schism_n because_o we_o only_o reform_v those_o error_n and_o corruption_n which_o they_o have_v introduce_v and_o want_v not_o sufficient_a authority_n for_o what_o be_v do_v but_o if_o they_o be_v still_o absolute_o resolve_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o censure_n they_o have_v pass_v and_o allow_v no_o true_a church_n upon_o earth_n but_o their_o own_o it_o be_v not_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n fifteen_o note_n that_o will_v ever_o prove_v it_o finis_fw-la errata_fw-la pag._n 367._o l._n 3._o for_o not_o r._n most_o p._n 371._o marg._n l._n ult_n for_o cap._n 3._o r._n 13._o london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o book_n late_o print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n a_o treatise_n show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n false_o claim_v to_o be_v that_o church_n and_o the_o pillar_n of_o that_o truth_n mention_v by_o st._n paul_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n chap._n 3._o verse_n 15.4o._o the_o people_n right_a to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n assert_v 4o._o a_o short_a summary_n of_o the_o principal_a controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o vindication_n of_o several_a protestant_a doctrine_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v protestancy_n destitute_a of_o scripture_n proof_n 4o._o two_o discourse_n of_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a a_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v the_o judgement_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n concern_v one_o special_a branch_n of_o the_o king_n prerogative_n viz._n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o penal_a law_n 4o._o a_o private_a prayer_n to_o be_v use_v in_o difficult_a time_n 8o._o
thing_n as_o mark_n of_o distinction_n only_o without_o any_o further_a design_n of_o lessen_v their_o nature_n and_o quality_n by_o they_o p._n 31._o 4._o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o name_n catholic_n in_o that_o time_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n conjoin_v with_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v a_o sure_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o must_v always_o be_v so_o even_o when_o the_o name_n and_o the_o thing_n be_v part_v p._n 32._o the_o worst_a of_o heretic_n lay_v claim_v to_o it_o p._n 33._o the_o rule_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n by_o prove_v from_o lactantius_n and_o st._n austin_n ibid._n 5._o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n in_o that_o age_n when_o all_o so_o call_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n corrupt_v in_o the_o faith_n be_v a_o sure_a hand_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n that_o it_o must_v always_o be_v so_o p._n 33_o 34._o iii_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v egregious_o corrupt_v the_o catholic_n faith_n or_o religion_n neither_o be_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n p._n 34._o this_o justify_v by_o compare_v her_o doctrine_n in_o several_a point_n with_o that_o deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n p._n 35._o for_o instance_n that_o angel_n and_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o and_o worship_v this_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n ibid._n the_o worship_v of_o image_n contrary_a to_o the_o second_o commandment_n which_o they_o make_v the_o same_o with_o the_o first_o p._n 36._o the_o scripture_n command_v all_o person_n indifferent_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v not_o this_o liberty_n to_o the_o laity_n but_o upon_o licence_n ibid._n the_o scripture_n forbid_v prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enjoin_v such_o and_o no_o other_o p._n 37._o purgatory_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n ibid._n the_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a instistitution_n of_o our_o saviour_n p._n 38._o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n even_o after_o consecration_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n p._n 39_o the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n derogatory_n to_o christ_n own_o priestly_a oblation_n whereby_o he_o once_o offer_v himself_o a_o complete_a sacrifice_n of_o expiation_n p._n 40._o in_o all_o these_o particular_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o corrupter_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n ibid._n the_o second_o note_n antiquity_n this_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alone_o nor_o in_o truth_n do_v it_o belong_v to_o it_o to_o prove_v this_o three_o thing_n be_v here_o offer_v i._o that_o the_o plea_n of_o bare_a antiquity_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n but_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o society_n of_o false_a religion_n p._n 41._o the_o note_n of_o a_o thing_n must_v be_v proper_a to_o that_o of_o which_o they_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o thing_n p._n 42._o 1._o because_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o a_o thing_n be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o and_o do_v ever_o belong_v to_o it_o since_o it_o have_v a_o be_v and_o can_v at_o no_o time_n be_v absent_a from_o it_o ibid._n 2._o other_o society_n have_v lay_v claim_n to_o this_o note_n and_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v they_o and_o therefore_o no_o proper_a note_n of_o a_o church_n ibid._n this_o show_v that_o bare_a antiquity_n can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o truth_n p._n 44._o antiquity_n and_o priority_n wide_o different_a p._n 45._o a_o twofold_a antiquity_n one_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o the_o other_o absolute_a and_o in_o itself_o ibid._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o be_v try_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o true_a antiquity_n p._n 46._o error_n almost_o as_o ancient_a as_o truth_n for_o which_o reason_n several_a wicked_a doctrine_n run_v down_o to_o posterity_n have_v make_v use_n of_o the_o plea_n of_o antiquity_n to_o give_v they_o countenance_n and_o support_v p._n 47._o ii_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n vain_o pretend_v to_o true_a antiquity_n i.e._n to_o ancient_a truth_n p._n 48._o wherein_o true_a antiquity_n do_v consist_v ibid._n the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n not_o ancient_a by_o reason_n of_o that_o alteration_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n p._n 49._o cardinal_n bellarmin_n ratiocination_n against_o this_o charge_n consist_v of_o 6_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o change_n of_o religion_n none_o of_o which_o he_o say_v can_v be_v show_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n ibid._n his_o reason_v build_v upon_o very_o false_a ground_n this_o consider_v and_o large_o answer_v in_o four_o particular_n p._n 50._o 1._o as_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o history_n and_o experience_n there_o have_v be_v great_a change_n in_o religion_n the_o author_n and_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o can_v be_v know_v p._n 50._o 2._o neither_o do_v the_o example_n they_o allege_v for_o this_o their_o reason_n serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o show_v the_o falseness_n of_o it_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o nestorian_a and_o arrian_n heresy_n p._n 51._o 3._o suppose_v they_o true_a they_o will_v uphold_v the_o great_a impiety_n ibid._n the_o heathen_a god_n and_o their_o oracle_n support_v by_o this_o argument_n p._n 52._o 4._o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o a_o instance_n of_o this_o there_o be_v a_o acknowledge_a change_n in_o it_o and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o first_o begin_v it_o viz._n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n ibid._n two_o instance_n out_o of_o polydore_n virgil_n when_o and_o by_o who_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 53._o 1._o their_o grand_a article_n of_o faith_n the_o papal_a authority_n bring_v in_o by_o victor_n and_o carry_v on_o by_o the_o follow_a bishop_n ibid._n the_o present_a definition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o depose_v king_n not_o challenge_v till_o gregory_n vii_o i.e._n 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n ibid._n 2._o it_o be_v know_v when_o image_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n p._n 55._o a_o little_a more_o than_o 100_o year_n since_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v decree_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n i._n e._n of_o the_o word_n of_o god._n ibid._n iii_o that_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o law_n establish_v be_v the_o true_a primitive_a christianity_n p._n 56._o the_o three_o note_n duration_n three_o thing_n be_v here_o consider_v i._o what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o term_n duration_n p._n 58._o duration_n include_v 3_o thing_n 1._o a_o be_v of_o a_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n p._n 58_o 2._o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o church_n to_o the_o end_n p._n 58_o 3._o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n without_o interruption_n p._n 58_o bellarmine_n application_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o deficient_a in_o the_o latter_a branch_n p._n 59_o ii_o how_o far_o duration_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n p._n 59_o this_o be_v no_o note_n by_o which_o a_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v find_v out_o or_o distinguish_v from_o the_o false_a ib._n for_o four_o reason_n 1._o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n will_v not_o permit_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o note_n p._n 60._o 2._o that_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o inseparable_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o season_n and_o case_n p._n 61._o 3._o that_o which_o be_v a_o note_n must_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v the_o note_n of_o and_o not_o common_a to_o other_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o that_o p._n 61_o 62._o common_a to_o false_a church_n as_o well_o as_o true_a ibid._n 4._o if_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n than_o those_o can_v not_o be_v true_a church_n which_o have_v not_o not_o have_v that_o duration_n ib._n this_o unchurche_n the_o 7_o church_n of_o asia_n p._n 62_o 63._o iii_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o just_a and_o sufficient_a title_n to_o this_o character_n p._n 63._o this_o prove_v as_o to_o 1._o place_v 2._o person_n 3._o order_n 4._o doctrine_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n by_o which_o a_o church_n do_v exist_v and_o be_v make_v
172._o the_o eight_o note_n sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n that_o this_o note_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o be_v far_o from_o perform_v what_o be_v promise_v for_o it_o by_o the_o cardinal_n be_v sufficient_o make_v evident_a by_o four_o particular_n p._n 173._o i._o what_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n p._n 174._o though_o that_o be_v the_o best_a and_o pure_a church_n which_o have_v the_o least_o of_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o its_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n yet_o that_o which_o be_v the_o best_a be_v not_o the_o only_a true_a church_n p._n 157._o ii_o that_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n i.e._n a_o pure_a profession_n of_o true_a religion_n without_o any_o mixture_n of_o error_n be_v no_o true_a note_n or_o character_n whereby_o a_o man_n may_v distinguish_v the_o true_a church_n from_o all_o false_a church_n p._n 176._o that_o this_o can_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n make_v evident_o appear_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o necessary_a property_n of_o all_o true_a note_n by_o which_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v p._n 177._o these_o be_v four._n 1._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v p._n 177_o to_o 180._o 2._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o that_o kind_n of_o thing_n of_o which_o it_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o thing_n of_o another_o kind_n p._n 181._o 3._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v p._n 182_o 183._o 4._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v inseparable_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v p._n 184_o to_o 188._o iii_o in_o what_o sense_n this_o may_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n p._n 189._o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o profess_v all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o receive_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o christian_a worship_n and_o discipline_n p._n 190._o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v to_o be_v try_v by_o this_o p._n 192._o iv_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v by_o this_o note_n in_o which_o soever_o of_o the_o two_o sense_n we_o understand_v it_o ibid._n this_o clear_o make_v out_o in_o four_o particular_n 1._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decrye_v man_n private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o utter_o insufficient_a to_o make_v any_o certain_a distinction_n of_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n p._n 194._o 2._o she_o allow_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n without_o the_o true_a church_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n p._n 195._o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n not_o to_o be_v resolve_v by_o principle_n of_o nature_n but_o those_o of_o revelation_n p._n 196._o no_o other_o rule_n while_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o this_o enquiry_n but_o only_o that_o of_o scripture_n ibid._n this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tell_v we_o be_v insufficient_a and_o that_o for_o two_o reason_n 1._o because_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o full_a enough_o as_o to_o all_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v certain_a unwritten_a tradition_n in_o the_o church_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o it_o by_o which_o its_o defect_n be_v supply_v p._n 197._o 2._o because_o it_o be_v not_o clear_a enough_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o be_v so_o obscure_o express_v that_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a what_o it_o be_v without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n p._n 198._o these_o consider_v and_o answer_v 3._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n resolve_v all_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o indeed_o be_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o popery_n p._n 199._o a_o short_a dialogue_n upon_o this_o argument_n between_o a_o papist_n and_o protestant_n p._n 200_o to_o 202._o 4._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v authority_n to_o the_o true_a church_n to_o impose_v upon_o we_o a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v such_o thing_n as_o before_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v p._n 203._o to_o the_o end._n the_o nine_o note_n efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n by_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n two_o thing_n understand_v either_o 1_o the_o power_n which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o particular_a man_n to_o dispose_v they_o to_o believe_v aright_o and_o to_o live_v well_o or_o 2_o that_o success_n which_o it_o have_v in_o draw_v multitude_n outward_o to_o profess_v and_o embrace_v it_o p._n 209._o the_o first_o too_o inward_a and_o the_o second_o which_o be_v that_o which_o the_o cardinal_n understand_v by_o it_o too_o uncertain_a a_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n ibid._n many_o other_o thing_n beside_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n which_o have_v and_o may_v convert_v whole_a nation_n to_o the_o christian_a religion_n such_o as_o hope_n and_o fear_n outward_a force_n &_o necessity_n p._n 210._o a_o instance_n hereof_o in_o the_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a p._n 211._o the_o difference_n between_o such_o conversion_n and_o those_o which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 212._o in_o answer_n to_o the_o cardinal_n upon_o this_o note_n three_o thing_n lay_v down_o i._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 213._o this_o appear_v 1._o from_o what_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n ibid._n 214._o 2._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o mankind_n p._n 215._o to_o 217._o 3._o from_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact._n p._n 218_o 219._o error_n have_v such_o a_o influence_n often_o up_o n_o man_n mind_n that_o they_o have_v reject_v truth_n and_o prefer_v the_o most_o gross_a and_o impious_a opinion_n before_o it_o ibid._n this_o apparent_a from_o the_o history_n of_o all_o age_n ibid._n more_o particular_o in_o the_o case_n of_o arianism_n p._n 219._o and_o in_o that_o of_o mahomitanism_n p._n 220._o the_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o if_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n account_v hereti_n k_v p._n 221._o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n ibid._n ii_o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n p._n 222._o and_o that_o for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o of_o that_o great_a mixture_n of_o error_n which_o there_o be_v with_o the_o truth_n which_o it_o profess_v p._n 223._o 2._o because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o much_o alter_v from_o what_o it_o former_o be_v ibid._n 3._o because_o it_o hinder_v those_o who_o embrace_v it_o from_o thorough_o examine_v it_o p._n 224._o 4._o because_o art_n and_o force_n have_v sometime_o be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o make_v it_o prevail_v p._n 225._o iii_o the_o argument_n the_o cardinal_n make_v use_v of_o to_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n prove_v to_o be_v insufficient_a p._n 226._o 1._o his_o argument_n from_o the_o scripture_n consider_v ibid._n 2._o his_o argument_n from_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v p._n 227._o 3._o his_o argument_n from_o the_o particular_a instance_n which_o he_o give_v of_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n reflect_v on_o p._n 227._o i._o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o english_a by_o austin_n the_o monk_n consider_v p._n 228._o four_o thing_n allege_v in_o answer_n to_o it_o ibid._n 2._o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o people_n of_o franconia_n by_o kilianus_n reply_v to_o p._n 228_o 229._o 3._o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o germany_n by_o vinofrid_n otherwise_o call_v boniface_n consider_v ibid._n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o vandal_n of_o the_o dane_n of_o the_o bulgarian_n slavonian_n etc._n etc._n ascribe_v to_o other_o cause_n than_o the_o naked_a efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n ibid._n the_o barbarous_a cruelty_n that_o be_v use_v by_o the_o spaniard_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o indian_n p._n 230._o the_o instance_n of_o heraclius_n the_o emperor_n letter_n to_o dagobert_n king_n of_o france_n concern_v the_o method_n he_o make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n p._n 231._o the_o conclusion_n the_o ten_o note_n holiness_n of_o life_n in_o this_o argument_n it_o be_v show_v i._o what_o the_o notion_n of_o holiness_n be_v p._n 233._o holiness_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n 1._o holiness_n of_o call_v and_o dedication_n what_o
mean_v by_o it_o p._n 234._o 2._o holiness_n of_o mind_n and_o manner_n what_o understand_v by_o it_o ibid._n ii_o neither_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o holiness_n can_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n ibid._n not_o the_o first_o because_o it_o appertain_v to_o its_o essence_n and_o constitution_n show_v what_o a_o church_n be_v and_o belong_v to_o every_o church_n whether_o greek_a abyssine_n roman_a or_o english_a p._n 235._o not_o the_o second_o kind_n and_o that_o for_o three_o reason_n 1._o because_o of_o that_o general_a admission_n of_o man_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o condition_n upon_o their_o profession_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n p._n 236._o 2._o because_o many_o man_n live_v sometime_o with_o more_o and_o sometime_o with_o less_o morality_n p._n 237._o 3._o because_o a_o man_n must_v first_o understand_v the_o nature_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o he_o can_v know_v what_o sanctity_n be_v and_o what_o that_o be_v in_o the_o life_n of_o any_o man_n which_o he_o be_v to_o take_v for_o the_o holiness_n of_o a_o christian_n p._n 238._o iii_o if_o holiness_n of_o life_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o roman_a church_n will_v not_o from_o this_o concession_n derive_v any_o great_a advantage_n p._n 239._o other_o church_n as_o famous_a as_o that_o of_o rome_n for_o their_o faith_n and_o manner_n ibid._n in_o latter_a age_n the_o goodness_n of_o moral_n in_o several_a of_o that_o communion_n to_o be_v ascribe_v not_o so_o much_o to_o popery_n as_o its_o cause_n but_o to_o those_o principle_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n p._n 240._o the_o reformation_n not_o free_a from_o bad_a man_n though_o this_o proceed_v from_o the_o man_n not_o from_o the_o cause_n ibid._n luther_n herein_o misrepresent_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o p._n 241._o great_a complaint_n of_o corruption_n in_o the_o romist_n writer_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n p._n 242._o many_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n infamous_a for_o their_o impiety_n p._n 243._o reflection_n on_o pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o last_o of_o the_o good_a and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o bad_a p._n 244._o on_o pope_n john_n the_o xii_o p._n 245._o on_o st._n dominick_n ibid._n on_o the_o austerity_n and_o mortification_n of_o their_o several_a order_n p._n 246._o many_o thing_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o by_o help_v forward_o a_o ill_a life_n do_v in_o part_n deface_v this_o mark_n of_o sanctity_n p._n 248._o the_o eleven_o note_n the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n beauties_n explication_n of_o this_o note_n and_o the_o ground_n upon_o which_o he_o build_v it_o p._n 250._o in_o answer_n to_o this_o three_o thing_n be_v lay_v down_o i._o that_o mere_a miracle_n without_o any_o other_o consideration_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a note_n of_o any_o church_n or_o religion_n whatever_o p._n 252._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n compare_v with_o those_o that_o be_v more_o peculiar_o appropriate_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 253._o the_o several_a circumstance_n consider_v which_o recommend_v the_o primitive_a miracle_n viz._n 1._o that_o they_o be_v high_o beneficial_a to_o human_a nature_n p._n 254._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n very_o many_o of_o they_o defective_a herein_o p._n 255._o 2._o the_o primitive_a miracle_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o significancy_n and_o the_o design_n of_o they_o plain_o lay_v down_o beforehand_o in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o v._o t._n p._n 256._o this_o apply_v to_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 257._o miracle_n in_o the_o most_o comprehensive_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v no_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o divinity_n of_o that_o doctrine_n they_o will_v advance_v p._n 258._o this_o instance_a in_o those_o of_o janne_n and_o jambres_n and_o of_o apollonius_n tyaneus_n p._n 259._o photius_n his_o censure_n of_o those_o of_o apollonius_n tyaneus_n p._n 260._o miracle_n whether_o suppose_v in_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o heretic_n not_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o good_a proof_n that_o either_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n p._n 261._o this_o apparent_a from_o st._n origen_n ibid._n st._n cyprian_n ib._n st._n irenaeus_n p._n 162._o st._n austin_n p._n 263._o ii_o miracle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o proof_n or_o confirmation_n of_o those_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n wherein_o the_o reform_a church_n differ_v from_o they_o p._n 264._o here_o three_o thing_n be_v consider_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o p._n 265._o this_o evident_a from_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n ibid._n the_o christian_a institution_n p._n 266._o the_o follow_a age_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n 2._o many_o of_o those_o doctrine_n for_o which_o these_o miracle_n be_v allege_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v assert_v or_o warrant_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o be_v rather_o contrary_a to_o they_o ibid._n this_o instance_a in_o transubstantiation_n p._n 266_o 267._o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n p._n 266_o 267._o worship_v of_o image_n p._n 266_o 267._o pray_v to_o saint_n depart_v p._n 266_o 267._o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n p._n 266_o 267._o miracle_n for_o the_o advance_v or_o support_v of_o those_o doctrine_n just_o suspect_v p._n 268._o 3._o no_o ground_n of_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o most_o of_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o romanist_n make_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o church_n p._n 269._o the_o story_n of_o the_o bone_n of_o babylas_n consider_v ibid._n those_o of_o g●rvatius_n and_o proatsius_n reveal_v by_o vision_n to_o st._n ambrose_n reflect_v on_o p._n 270._o the_o fabulous_a story_n of_o late_a age_n among_o they_o condemn_v by_o several_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 271._o 1_o person_n st._n bernard_n reflect_v on_o p._n 273._o st._n john_n damascen_n p._n 274._o some_o miracle_n wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o transubstantiation_n consider_v p._n 273_o etc._n etc._n iii_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a religion_n as_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o the_o work_v of_o miracle_n in_o our_o age_n so_o if_o we_o do_v we_o can_v pretend_v to_o prove_v nothing_o by_o they_o but_o what_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n p._n 280._o the_o twelve_o note_n the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n two_o thing_n to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n 1._o that_o divine_a revelation_n whereby_o a_o man_n be_v enable_v to_o foretell_v such_o or_o such_o contingent_a event_n will_v come_v to_o pass_v p._n 285._o 2._o or_o the_o testimony_n that_o be_v give_v by_o the_o fulfil_n of_o prophecy_n to_o some_o doctrine_n that_o be_v design_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o it_o p._n 286._o in_o the_o latter_a sense_n it_o may_v be_v admit_v as_o a_o mark_n or_o rather_o a_o argument_n of_o that_o doctrine_n the_o profession_n whereof_o make_v the_o church_n p._n 287._o great_a caution_n must_v be_v use_v in_o lay_v down_o the_o fulfil_n the_o prediction_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n ibid._n two_o thing_n here_o examine_v i._o whether_o this_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o cardinal_n offer_v three_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o p._n 288._o the_o first_o of_o they_o disprove_v and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o joel_n apply_v by_o st._n peter_n act_n 2.16_o to_o the_o church_n explain_v and_o vindicate_v p._n 289._o his_o second_o argument_n that_o none_o know_v future_a contingence_n but_o god_n only_o consider_v p._n 290._o his_o three_o argument_n from_o the_o 18_o of_o deut._n examine_v and_o overthrow_v p._n 291._o the_o foretell_v of_o a_o future_a contingent_a event_n no_o certain_a note_n of_o true_a doctrine_n ibid._n there_o have_v be_v true_a prophecy_n among_o heathen_n the_o famous_a acrostic_n of_o the_o sibylla_n erythroea_n the_o book_n of_o hystaspes_n the_o prediction_n of_o balaam_n which_o show_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n not_o to_o be_v confine_v within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 292_o 293._o light_n of_o prophecy_n no_o note_n of_o the_o church_n because_o separable_a from_o it_o there_o have_v be_v true_a prophecy_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o it_o have_v not_o always_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n p._n 294._o ii_o if_o it_o be_v a_o note_n the_o cardinal_n have_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v it_o belong_v to_o his_o church_n and_o no_o other_o p._n 295._o his_o instance_n of_o agabus_n and_o the_o old_a prophet_n may_v serve_v any_o christian_a church_n as_o well_o if_o not_o better_a than_o he_o ibid._n his_o instance_n of_o gregory_n thaumat_n bishop_n
want_v for_o since_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o greek_a the_o armenian_a the_o abyssine_n the_o roman_a church_n he_o will_v find_v out_o which_o of_o these_o church_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n which_o after_o all_o their_o shuffle_n they_o can_v never_o make_v any_o better_a sense_n of_o than_o which_o of_o the_o part_n be_v the_o whole_a since_o there_o be_v many_o unhappy_a dispute_n among_o christian_n the_o use_n of_o note_n be_v to_o find_v out_o a_o infallible_a church_n which_o must_v by_o a_o indisputable_a authority_n dictate_v to_o all_o other_o church_n what_o they_o must_v believe_v and_o what_o they_o must_v practice_v and_o to_o bring_v all_o other_o church_n into_o subjection_n they_o must_v find_v out_o a_o church_n out_o of_o who_o communion_n there_o be_v no_o pardon_n of_o sin_n no_o eternal_a life_n to_o be_v have_v that_o be_v in_o short_a the_o use_n of_o note_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o only_a catholic_n church_n the_o only_a infallible_a oracle_n of_o faith_n and_o final_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o those_o other_o church_n which_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o she_o thus_o bellarmine_n unriddle_v this_o matter_n that_o the_o usefulness_n of_o this_o inquiry_n after_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v because_o in_o the_o true_a church_n only_o there_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n the_o true_a remission_n of_o sin_n the_o true_a hope_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n 1._o omnes_fw-la enim_fw-la ●onfitentur_fw-la in_o solâ_fw-la verâ_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la esse_fw-la veram_fw-la fidem_fw-la veram_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la remissionem_fw-la veram_fw-la spem_fw-la salutis_fw-la aeternâ_fw-la bell._n de_fw-fr notis_n eccl._n cap._n 1._o which_o be_v certain_o true_a that_o all_o this_o be_v to_o be_v have_v only_o in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n without_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o no_o remission_n of_o sin_n nor_o hope_v of_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o then_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o true_a church_n but_o this_o will_v not_o do_v the_o business_n neither_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o know_v that_o every_o true_a church_n profess_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o we_o must_v find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n as_o can_v err_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o have_v authority_n to_o correct_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o we_o must_v allow_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n to_o be_v have_v in_o no_o other_o church_n but_o this_o which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n which_o can_v make_v such_o a_o church_n the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o this_o church_n must_v be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o the_o cardinal_n be_v undo_v with_o all_o his_o note_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n the_o observe_v this_o give_v we_o the_o true_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n which_o be_v not_o what_o it_o be_v which_o make_v a_o church_n a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o christian_n to_o know_v that_o they_o may_v take_v care_n that_o nothing_o be_v want_v in_o their_o communion_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a use_n of_o note_n that_o i_o know_v of_o but_o the_o dispute_n be_v how_o among_o all_o the_o division_n of_o christendom_n we_o may_v find_v out_o that_o only_a true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n the_o only_a infallible_a guide_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o which_o alone_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n and_o salvation_n be_v make_v and_o by_o some_o note_n and_o character_n of_o such_o a_o church_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o church_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v what_o the_o protestant_n intend_v in_o those_o note_n they_o give_v of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o show_v what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o be_v and_o constitution_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n for_o that_o and_o none_o else_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v all_o thing_n essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n the_o second_o be_v what_o the_o papist_n intend_v by_o their_o note_n of_o a_o church_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o some_o brief_a remark_n upon_o both_o these_o way_n will_v abundant_o serve_v for_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o more_o particular_a examination_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a design_n of_o these_o paper_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o papist_n and_o protestant_n differ_v so_o much_o about_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n since_o the_o question_n which_o each_o of_o they_o intend_v to_o answer_v by_o their_o several_a note_n so_o vast_o differ_v when_o you_o ask_v a_o protestant_n what_o be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n he_o answer_v to_o that_o question_n what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n or_o what_o it_o be_v which_o make_v a_o church_n a_o true_a church_n that_o be_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v and_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o church_n by_o the_o essential_a mark_n and_o property_n of_o a_o church_n when_o you_o ask_v a_o papist_n for_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n he_o answer_v to_o that_o question_n which_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o think_v to_o point_v you_o out_o to_o a_o true_a church_n by_o some_o external_a mark_n and_o sign_n without_o ever_o inquire_v what_o it_o be_v which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o this_o he_o must_v of_o necessity_n do_v according_a to_o his_o principle_n for_o he_o can_v know_v nothing_o of_o religion_n till_o he_o have_v find_v the_o church_n from_o which_o he_o must_v learn_v every_o thing_n else_o let_v we_o consider_v then_o which_o of_o these_o be_v most_o reasonable_a first_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o protestant_a way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o church_n by_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o true_a church_n such_o as_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n right_o and_o due_o administer_v by_o person_n right_o ordain_v according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostolical_a practice_n this_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a church_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a christian_a church_n without_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o christian_a sacrament_n which_o can_v be_v right_o administer_v but_o by_o church-officer_n right_o and_o due_o ordain_v the_o regular_a exercise_n of_o discipline_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o purity_n and_o good_a government_n of_o it_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o the_o protestant_n allege_v for_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o these_o be_v as_o infallible_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o humane_a nature_n be_v of_o a_o man_n for_o they_o be_v the_o essential_a principle_n of_o it_o by_o this_o every_o man_n may_v know_v whether_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o for_o where_o this_o be_v there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n where_o this_o be_v not_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n whatever_o other_o mark_n of_o a_o church_n there_o be_v and_o i_o know_v no_o other_o use_n of_o note_n but_o to_o find_v out_o what_o we_o seek_v for_o in_o answer_n to_o such_o note_n as_o these_o cardinal_z bellarmin_n object_n three_o thing_n 1._o that_o note_n whereby_o we_o will_v distinguish_v thing_n must_v not_o be_v common_a to_o other_o thing_n but_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o that_o of_o which_o it_o be_v a_o note_n as_o if_o you_o will_v describe_v a_o man_n to_o i_o who_o i_o never_o see_v so_o as_o that_o i_o may_v know_v he_o when_o i_o meet_v he_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v two_o hand_n or_o two_o eye_n etc._n etc._n because_o this_o be_v common_a to_o all_o men._n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o fault_n of_o these_o note_n for_o as_o for_o the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o truth_n or_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n this_o be_v common_a to_o all_o sect_n at_o least_o in_o their_o own_o opinion_n and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n all_o sect_n and_o profession_n of_o christian_n either_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o sacrament_n or_o at_o least_o think_v that_o they_o have_v so_o and_o therefore_o these_o mark_n can_v visible_o distinguish_v the_o true_a church_n from_o any_o other_o sect_n of_o
of_o this_o for_o all_o those_o article_n which_o be_v before_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n must_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v know_v before_o it_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n who_o make_v the_o world_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v and_o descend_v into_o hell_n that_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right-hand_a of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n and_o from_o thence_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o we_o may_v add_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o not_o till_o then_o for_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n through_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o unite_v they_o into_o one_o mystical_a body_n so_o that_o we_o must_v know_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n before_o we_o can_v know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n mean_v and_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a then_o that_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v found_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n when_o we_o must_v first_o know_v all_o the_o great_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v any_o thing_n about_o a_o church_n this_o invert_v the_o order_n of_o our_o creed_n which_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v begin_v thus_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o church_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o apostle_n or_o those_o apostolical_a man_n who_o frame_v the_o creed_n will_v have_v put_v it_o so_o have_v they_o think_v the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n this_o short_a discourse_n i_o think_v be_v enough_o in_o general_a concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o shall_v leave_v the_o particular_a examination_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n to_o other_o hand_n which_o the_o reader_n may_v expect_v to_o follow_v in_o their_o order_n the_o end._n bellarmin_n first_o note_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n examine_v prima_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la ipsum_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o christianorum_fw-la nomen_fw-la bellar._n cap._n 4._o de_fw-la notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la p._n 1477._o imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 8._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n rr._n in_o christo_n p._n ac_fw-la d._n d._n wilhelmo_n archiep._n cant._n a_o sacr._n dome_a that_o the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o truth_n so_o clear_a in_o itself_o so_o often_o and_o full_o prove_v by_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o reformation_n that_o it_o may_v just_o seem_v a_o wonder_n that_o any_o church_n which_o be_v not_o conscious_a to_o herself_o of_o any_o error_n and_o deviation_n from_o it_o shall_v refuse_v to_o put_v herself_o upon_o that_o trial_n this_o give_v be_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n at_o first_o make_v it_o one_o and_o make_v it_o catholic_n according_a as_o this_o fare_v in_o any_o part_n or_o member_n of_o it_o be_v that_o church_n distinguish_v and_o denominate_v it_o will_v be_v true_a or_o false_a pure_a or_o corrupt_a sound_v or_o heretical_a according_a as_o the_o faith_n it_o hold_v bear_v a_o conformity_n or_o repugnance_n to_o the_o write_a doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o orthodox_n faith_n make_v a_o orthodox_n church_n but_o if_o her_o faith_n become_v taint_v and_o heterodox_n the_o church_n will_v be_v so_o too_o and_o shall_v it_o happen_v whole_o to_o apostatise_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n it_o will_v whole_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a church_n this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v notorious_o warp_a from_o truth_n decline_v the_o be_v examine_v and_o measure_v by_o this_o rule_n have_v indeed_o some_o reason_n to_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v so_o evident_o against_o she_o and_o endeavour_n to_o support_v herself_o with_o great_a name_n and_o swell_a title_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o so_o often_o hear_v of_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n amplitude_n unity_n succession_n miracle_n prophecy_n and_o several_a other_o that_o their_o great_a cardinal_n set_v down_o as_o so_o many_o perpetual_a and_o never-failing_a mark_n and_o character_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n and_o to_o assert_v his_o own_o i_o shall_v in_o this_o short_a tract_n examine_v the_o first_o of_o these_o and_o that_o i_o may_v give_v it_o all_o the_o fair_a play_n imaginable_a endeavour_v to_o represent_v it_o in_o its_o full_a force_n and_o to_o its_o best_a advantage_n bellarmin_n make_v it_o thus_o to_o speak_v for_o itself_o the_o apostle_n in_o 1_o cor._n 3.4_o make_v it_o the_o sign_n and_o mark_v of_o schismatic_n to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n though_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o whether_o of_o paul_n or_o apollos_n or_o cephas_n and_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o orthodox_n church_n be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o the_o conventicle_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n by_o the_o name_n of_o their_o first_o author_n and_o therefore_o since_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o all_o even_o her_o bitter_a adversary_n call_v catholic_n and_o the_o several_a sect_n of_o the_o reform_a after_o the_o name_n of_o their_o particular_a doctor_n as_o luther_n calvin_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o the_o like_a it_o follow_v that_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sure_a undoubted_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o also_o that_o this_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o church_n this_o be_v his_o argument_n and_o as_o much_o as_o he_o value_v his_o church_n upon_o it_o i_o can_v see_v no_o more_o in_o it_o but_o this_o that_o because_o church_n profess_v the_o true_a orthodox_n faith_n be_v ancient_o style_v catholic_n therefore_o all_o that_o have_v be_v style_v catholic_n since_o be_v their_o faith_n what_o it_o will_v must_v be_v true_a and_o orthodox_n church_n and_o because_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v christian_n to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n though_o of_o never_o so_o great_a eminency_n in_o the_o church_n and_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o work_v of_o the_o ancient_n be_v real_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n that_o be_v so_o call_v as_o the_o valentinian_o marcionite_n montanist_n and_o other_o therefore_o all_o that_o in_o after-age_n shall_v be_v so_o nicknamed_a though_o out_o of_o malice_n and_o illwill_a by_o their_o enemy_n whilst_o they_o disow_v it_o themselves_o must_v go_v for_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n this_o be_v so_o weak_a a_o topick_n that_o i_o may_v just_o break_v off_o here_o have_v expose_v it_o sufficient_o by_o a_o bare_a represent_v of_o it_o yet_o for_o the_o reader_n be_v far_o information_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v proceed_v to_o show_v these_o three_o thing_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o will_v ever_o be_v a_o stand_a note_n of_o it_o ii_o that_o from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n iii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v egregious_o corrupt_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n neither_o be_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o etc._n etc._n and_o this_o as_o evident_o appear_v from_o their_o write_n and_o even_o from_o those_o testimony_n cite_v by_o bellarmine_n be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o in_o their_o time_n be_v general_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o when_o ever_o it_o be_v so_o it_o will_v be_v a_o infallible_a note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n himself_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o to_o the_o church_n contain_v in_o those_o write_n which_o they_o by_o
the_o extraordinary_a direction_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n indict_v and_o commend_v to_o the_o care_n and_o keep_n of_o all_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o as_o a_o sure_a unerring_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n call_v catholic_n both_o as_o it_o contain_v all_o thing_n in_o it_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v and_o publish_v in_o all_o time_n and_o successive_o in_o all_o place_n according_a to_o vincent_n lirin_fw-mi rule_n quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o set_v out_o at_o jerusalem_n but_o be_v not_o to_o stop_v there_o but_o from_o thence_o to_o spread_v itself_o into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world._n the_o apostle_n be_v first_o to_o preach_v to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n but_o not_o to_o they_o only_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n be_v our_o saviour_n commission_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o &c._n &c._n be_v god_n promise_n to_o our_o saviour_n the_o christian_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v confine_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o one_o nation_n like_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n within_o the_o small_a territory_n of_o judaea_n but_o to_o be_v make_v up_o of_o every_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n now_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n before_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v only_o some_o few_o mislead_v and_o seduce_v people_n separate_v from_o it_o it_o be_v general_o true_a that_o they_o that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n and_o those_o that_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n have_v deprave_v and_o corrupt_v it_o the_o very_a name_n catholic_n become_v a_o distinguish_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o to_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n of_o any_o sect_n the_o mark_n of_o a_o heretical_a and_o scismatical_a one_o but_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o bare_a name_n as_o for_o the_o thing_n the_o tenet_n and_o doctrine_n signify_v by_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n be_v all_o those_o father_n to_o be_v understand_v quote_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o who_o seem_v to_o lay_v any_o stress_n upon_o the_o name_n it_o be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n that_o in_o those_o time_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n if_o not_o every_o where_o accompany_v and_o go_v along_o with_o the_o name_n thus_o when_o st._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n advise_v his_o catechuman_n when_o they_o shall_v go_v into_o any_o city_n catech._n cap._n 18._o catech._n to_o inquire_v for_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o there_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n be_v teach_v and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n add_v the_o church_n be_v therefore_o call_v catholic_n because_o it_o teach_v all_o those_o truth_n all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o know_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n pacianus_n not_o unfit_o say_v christian_n be_v my_o name_n and_o catholic_n my_o surname_n cath._n epist_n ad_fw-la sym._n pron_z de_fw-fr nom_fw-fr cath._n by_o the_o one_o i_o be_o distinguish_v from_o heathen_n by_o the_o other_o from_o heretic_n and_o scismatic_o because_o in_o that_o age_n few_o or_o none_o go_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n but_o those_o that_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith._n and_o as_o this_o be_v a_o true_a account_n of_o the_o original_a of_o the_o name_n catholic_n and_o the_o weight_n that_o be_v lay_v upon_o it_o in_o those_o early_a time_n so_o will_v the_o name_n ever_o continue_v to_o be_v a_o sure_a unerring_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n whilst_o it_o be_v inseparable_o conjoin_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n where_o this_o be_v teach_v and_o profess_v there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n where_o this_o fail_v in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a the_o church_n decay_v or_o be_v lose_v ii_o no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n this_o be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o itself_o that_o it_o neither_o need_v nor_o be_v scarce_o capable_a of_o a_o proof_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v catholic_n therefore_o she_o be_v catholic_n the_o papist_n be_v call_v catholic_n therefore_o they_o be_v catholic_n this_o be_v such_o a_o way_n of_o reason_v that_o every_o man_n must_v be_v ashamed_a to_o own_o but_o those_o who_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o say_v any_o thing_n when_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n for_o 1._o the_o christian_a church_n be_v not_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n at_o the_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v no_o essential_a note_n of_o it_o we_o find_v no_o mention_n of_o this_o name_n in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o read_v that_o the_o disciple_n be_v call_v christian_n at_o antioch_n but_o the_o name_n catholic_n principal_o respect_v the_o diffusive_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n can_v not_o proper_o be_v so_o call_v till_o the_o christian_a faith_n have_v be_v more_o general_o and_o universal_o preach_v in_o the_o world_n therefore_o pacianus_n in_o the_o forequote_v place_n confess_v that_o the_o name_n catholic_n be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o thence_o some_o have_v conclude_v that_o the_o creed_n which_o go_v under_o the_o apostle_n name_v have_v this_o denomination_n of_o the_o church_n insert_v in_o it_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o compose_v by_o they_o but_o by_o some_o holy_a bishop_n of_o a_o late_a stand_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o must_v it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o name_n be_v very_o ancient_a and_o of_o a_o early_a date_n it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o oriental_a creed_n particular_o those_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o alexandria_n and_o in_o the_o inscription_n of_o st._n james_n st._n peter_n st._n john_n and_o st._n jude_n epistle_n which_o be_v all_o style_v general_n or_o catholic_n epistle_n 2._o name_n be_v oftentimes_o arbitrary_o and_o at_o random_n and_o false_o impose_v on_o thing_n and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o they_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n have_v a_o name_n to_o live_v but_o be_v dead_a the_o church_n of_o laodicea_n glory_v that_o she_o be_v rich_a but_o be_v poor_a many_o on_o earth_n be_v call_v god_n who_o be_v but_o mortal_a man_n simon_n magus_n be_v call_v the_o great_a power_n of_o god_n but_o be_v a_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n mahomet_n a_o great_a prophet_n but_o be_v a_o impostor_n diana_n the_o great_a goddess_n of_o the_o ephesian_n but_o be_v a_o idol_n our_o bless_a saviour_n foretell_v that_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o name_n each_o say_n i_o be_o christ_n but_o be_v deceiver_n thus_o you_o see_v thing_n and_o person_n be_v not_o always_o as_o they_o be_v call_v nor_o do_v i_o believe_v the_o papist_n be_v willing_a that_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v think_v in_o reality_n to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o some_o name_n that_o be_v too_o liberal_o bestow_v upon_o she_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n call_v himself_o christ_n vicar_n but_o other_o antichrist_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n style_v herself_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o other_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n i_o do_v as_o little_o justify_v the_o fasten_n such_o odious_a name_n upon_o they_o as_o approve_v their_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o the_o other_o glorious_a title_n yet_o this_o i_o be_o pretty_a well_o assure_v of_o that_o a_o man_n of_o ordinary_a ability_n may_v say_v as_o much_o to_o prove_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n and_o the_o romish_a church_n a_o harlot_n as_o the_o whole_a college_n can_v to_o justify_v the_o pretence_n of_o the_o one_o to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n or_o of_o the_o other_o to_o be_v his_o undefiled_a spouse_n 3._o name_n be_v oftentimes_o impose_v on_o thing_n and_o so_o use_v as_o mark_n of_o distinction_n only_o without_o any_o far_a design_n of_o represent_v their_o nature_n and_o quality_n by_o they_o thus_o we_o call_v the_o romanist_n catholic_n not_o that_o we_o think_v they_o be_v true_o so_o but_o in_o compliment_n or_o irony_n in_o compliance_n with_o common_a use_n or_o by_o way_n of_o discrimination_n from_o other_o christian_n and_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o they_o call_v we_o the_o reform_a and_o if_o they_o think_v this_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n to_o prove_v they_o catholic_n we_o have_v the_o same_o and_o it_o will_v hold_v as_o strong_a to_o prove_v we_o
consistent_a with_o the_o pain_n and_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n which_o bellarmin_n tell_v we_o be_v hot_a than_o hell_n itself_o be_v past_o my_o apprehension_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o soul_n be_v to_o continue_v in_o purgatory_n till_o they_o have_v make_v full_a satisfaction_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v thorough_o purge_v from_o they_o and_o that_o whoever_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o debt_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o be_v pay_v either_o in_o this_o world_n or_o in_o purgatory_n before_o they_o can_v be_v admit_v into_o heaven_n be_v accurse_v council_n trid._n sess_n 6._o can._n 30._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v the_o cup_n be_v not_o to_o be_v administer_v to_o the_o laity_n and_o give_v many_o reason_n for_o it_o lest_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v spill_v lest_o the_o wine_n keep_v for_o the_o sick_a shall_v fret_v lest_o wine_n may_v not_o always_o be_v have_v or_o lest_o some_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v the_o smell_n or_o taste_v of_o it_o whether_o these_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n or_o no_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n enjoin_v all_o to_o believe_v they_o so_o under_o a_o anathema_n council_n trid._n sess_n 21._o can._n 1._o &_o 2._o the_o council_n of_o constance_n acknowledge_v that_o our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o that_o it_o so_o continue_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o century_n and_o yet_o with_o a_o notwithstanding_o to_o both_o these_o it_o sacrilegious_o rob_v the_o people_n of_o the_o cup._n council_n const_n sess_n 13._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o the_o priest_n pronounce_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o species_n or_o accident_n only_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v and_o have_v make_v it_o a_o article_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o under_o a_o anathema_n council_n trid._n sess_n 13._o the_o real_a praes_n c._n 1._o cornel._n a_o lapide_fw-la tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o some_o of_o their_o grave_a divine_n that_o this_o change_n be_v make_v after_o so_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a manner_n that_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v incarnate_v before_o the_o force_n of_o this_o charm_n will_v have_v incarnate_v he_o and_o clothe_v he_o with_o human_a nature_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n christ_n be_v offer_v as_o often_o as_o that_o be_v celebrate_v and_o that_o though_o therein_o he_o be_v unbloody_o offer_v yet_o be_v it_o a_o true_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n both_o of_o the_o live_n and_o dead_a council_n trid._n sess_n 22._o cap._n 1._o and_o declare_v the_o person_n accurse_v that_o deny_v any_o part_n of_o this_o ibid._n in_o all_o these_o particular_n you_o see_v and_o several_a other_o may_v be_v instanced_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n bear_v a_o manifest_a repugnance_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n now_o if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v allow_v so_o much_o as_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n in_o those_o thing_n it_o particular_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n contradict_v that_o rule_n in_o those_o thing_n must_v be_v condemn_v for_o a_o corrupter_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o doctrine_n and_o have_v thus_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o she_o hold_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n it_o be_v as_o evident_a that_o she_o be_v not_o and_o consequent_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o catholic_n church_n the_o end_n london_n print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o second_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz._n antiquity_n secunda_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la antiqvitas_fw-la bellar._n l._n four_o c._n v._o de_fw-la notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 5._o 1687._o jo._n batte_o it_o be_v a_o shrewd_a sign_n that_o a_o church_n be_v in_o a_o ill_a case_n when_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o witty_a defender_n of_o it_o commend_v it_o to_o the_o world_n by_o such_o mark_n and_o character_n whereby_o they_o say_v it_o may_v be_v know_v as_o be_v neither_o proper_a to_o it_o alone_o nor_o in_o truth_n belong_v to_o it_o but_o more_o true_o and_o evident_o belong_v to_o they_o who_o they_o oppose_v that_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o famous_a note_n of_o antiquity_n which_o bellarmin_n and_o other_o make_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o will_v clear_o and_o distinct_o demonstrate_v by_o show_v these_o three_o thing_n i._o that_o the_o plea_n of_o bare_a antiquity_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n but_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o society_n of_o false_a religion_n ii_o that_o true_a antiquity_n be_v not_o on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n but_o iii_o that_o it_o be_v true_o on_o we_o i._o it_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o even_o by_o they_o who_o make_v antiquity_n a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o note_n of_o a_o thing_n must_v be_v proper_a to_o that_o of_o which_o they_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o thing_n which_o quite_o destroy_v this_o note_n of_o antiquity_n upon_o a_o double_a account_n first_o because_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o a_o thing_n be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o and_o do_v ever_o belong_v to_o it_o since_o it_o have_v a_o be_v and_o can_v at_o no_o time_n without_o the_o destruction_n of_o its_o be_v be_v absent_a from_o it_o this_o every_o freshman_n in_o learning_n know_v and_o by_o that_o may_v know_v that_o antiquity_n be_v not_o a_o note_n proper_a to_o the_o church_n because_o it_o do_v not_o always_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n for_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o church_n be_v new._n which_o be_v object_v to_o it_o by_o the_o adversary_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n answer_v the_o very_a same_o to_o they_o then_o that_o we_o do_v to_o the_o romanist_n now_o as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o observe_v second_o that_o other_o society_n have_v lay_v claim_n to_o this_o note_n and_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o proper_a note_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v certain_o know_v be_v common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n 1._o for_o first_o the_o samaritan_n claim_v it_o against_o the_o jew_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o woman_n discourse_n with_o our_o saviour_n joh._n four_o 20._o our_o father_n worship_v in_o this_o mountain_n etc._n etc._n they_o have_v do_v so_o for_o many_o age_n before_o they_o worship_v in_o jerusalem_n for_o here_o god_n appear_v unto_o abraham_n who_o here_o also_o build_v a_o altar_n when_o he_o come_v first_o out_o of_o chaldea_n gen._n twelve_o 6_o 7._o here_o jacob_n likewise_o build_v a_o altar_n when_o he_o come_v out_o of_o mesopotamia_n gen._n xxxiii_o 20._o here_o there_o be_v a_o sanctuary_n in_o the_o day_n of_o joshua_n who_o give_v his_o last_o charge_n to_o israel_n and_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o they_o in_o this_o place_n chap._n xxiv_o 25_o 26._o here_o the_o patriarch_n be_v bury_v v._o 32._o nay_o hereabouts_o be_v shiloh_n judg._n xxi_o 19_o where_o by_o the_o order_n of_o joshua_n the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v settle_v long_o before_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o jerusalem_n josh_n xviii_o 1_o 2._o which_o be_v all_o this_o time_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o jebusite_n to_o which_o plea_n the_o jew_n can_v not_o make_v a_o answer_n but_o by_o maintain_v this_o principle_n that_o not_o the_o antiquity_n of_o place_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n precept_n be_v to_o be_v their_o direction_n in_o this_o case_n and_o god_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o holy_a book_n have_v choose_v jerusalem_n to_o place_v his_o name_n there_o 2._o thus_o the_o jew_n themselves_o argue_v against_o christ_n that_o he_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n which_o have_v be_v derive_v to_o they_o from_o ancient_a time_n mark_v seven_o 1_o etc._n etc._n and_o against_o christian_n who_o they_o call_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o nazarene_o act_v xxiv_o 5._o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v heretic_n new_o spring_v up_o from_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n 3._o and_o thus_o the_o pagan_n argue_v against_o they_o both_o particular_o against_o the_o christian_n say_v to_o st._n paul_n at_o athens_n may_v we_o know_v what_o this_o new_a doctrine_n whereof_o thou_o speak_v be_v act_n xvii_o 19_o and_o in_o aftertime_n call_v it_o a_o novel_a religion_n a_o
novel_a name_n and_o dispute_v that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o true_a because_o they_o be_v strengthen_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o antiquity_n so_o we_o read_v in_o arnobius_n 2._o arnobius_n lib._n 2._o and_o in_o symmachus_n arcad._n symmachus_n ad_fw-la valentin_n theodos_fw-la &_o arcad._n and_o prudentius_n martyris_fw-la prudentius_n in_o ago_o romani_fw-la martyris_fw-la and_o many_o other_o who_o i_o omit_v content_v myself_o with_o st._n austin_n alone_o because_o he_o give_v a_o most_o pertinent_a answer_n to_o this_o poor_a pretence_n which_o will_v as_o well_o serve_v we_o against_o the_o papist_n as_o it_o do_v he_o against_o the_o pagan_n cxiv_o pagan_n quaest_n ex_fw-la vet._n &_o novo_fw-la testam_fw-la ent_a q._n cxiv_o who_o contend_v that_o what_o they_o hold_v be_v true_a because_o of_o its_o antiquity_n as_o if_o say_v he_o antiquity_n or_o ancient_a custom_n shall_v carry_v it_o against_o the_o truth_n thus_o murderer_n adulterer_n and_o all_o wicked_a man_n may_v defend_v their_o crime_n for_o they_o be_v ancient_a practice_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world._n though_o from_o hence_o they_o ought_v rather_o to_o understand_v their_o error_n because_o that_o which_o be_v reprehensible_a and_o filthy_a be_v thereby_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v ill_o begin_v etc._n etc._n nor_o can_v it_o be_v make_v honest_a and_o unreprovable_a by_o have_v be_v do_v long_o ago_o but_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o devil_n craft_n and_o subtilty_n as_o he_o excellent_o observe_v in_o the_o same_o place_n who_o as_o he_o invent_v those_o false_a worship_n and_o sprinkle_v some_o juggle_a trick_n to_o draw_v man_n into_o they_o so_o he_o take_v such_o course_n that_o in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o fallacy_n be_v commend_v and_o the_o filthy_a invention_n be_v excuse_v by_o be_v derive_v from_o antiquity_n for_o by_o long_a custom_n that_o begin_v not_o to_o seem_v filthy_a which_o be_v so_o in_o itself_o the_o irrational_a vulgar_a begin_v to_o worship_n doemons_n or_o dead_a man_n who_o appear_v to_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v god_n which_o worship_n be_v draw_v down_o into_o custom_n of_o long_a continuance_n think_v thereby_o to_o be_v defend_v as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o reason_n whereas_o the_o reason_n of_o truth_n be_v not_o from_o custom_n which_o be_v from_o antiquity_n but_o from_o god_n who_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n not_o by_o long_a continuance_n or_o antiquity_n but_o by_o eternity_n let_v this_o be_v apply_v to_o our_o present_a business_n and_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o bare_a antiquity_n can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o truth_n for_o there_o be_v very_o ancient_a error_n which_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n such_o a_o man_n as_o bellarmin_n be_v shall_v let_v this_o pass_v the_o muster_n among_o the_o note_n he_o reckon_v up_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o church_n which_o he_o can_v intend_v for_o no_o more_o than_o to_o make_v a_o show_n not_o for_o any_o substantial_a service_n of_o which_o this_o be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o he_o have_v no_o soon_o name_v antiqvity_n as_o the_o second_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o discern_v it_o will_v stand_v he_o in_o no_o stead_n he_o immediate_o set_v it_o aside_o and_o cunning_o slide_v to_o another_o thing_n with_o which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o blend_v and_o confound_v it_o for_o thus_o he_o argue_v v._n l._n four_o de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la c._n v._n without_o doubt_n the_o true_a church_n be_v ancient_a than_o the_o false_a as_o god_n be_v before_o the_o devil_n and_o consequent_o we_o read_v the_o good_a seed_n be_v sow_o first_o before_o the_o tare_n but_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v wide_o different_a the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o antiquity_n and_o priority_n that_o which_o be_v ancient_a and_o that_o which_o be_v first_o whatsoever_o be_v first_o be_v undoubted_o true_a but_o whatsoever_o be_v ancient_a be_v not_o always_o so_o unless_o it_o be_v of_o such_o antiquity_n that_o it_o be_v also_o first_o there_o be_v a_o double_a antiquity_n therefore_o one_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o the_o other_o absolute_a and_o in_o itself_o this_o last_o sort_n of_o antiquity_n be_v the_o same_o with_o what_o be_v first_o unto_o which_o we_o be_v desirous_a to_o go_v to_o which_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o stand_v and_o by_o which_o we_o will_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o rule_n which_o tertullian_n lay_v down_o in_o several_a of_o his_o book_n thirty_o book_n l._n four_o contra_fw-la martion_n c._n 5._o adu._n praxeam_n c._n 2._o de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n thirty_o we_o will_v fain_o bring_v our_o cause_n and_o church_n to_o be_v try_v that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v first_o that_o first_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o from_o the_o beginning_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n which_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v most_o sacred_a viz._n that_o which_o they_o read_v in_o their_o holy_a write_n this_o be_v our_o antiquity_n as_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o famous_a apology_n praestructa_fw-la divinae_fw-la literaturae_fw-la xlvii_o literaturae_fw-la apologia_fw-la c._n xlvii_o build_v before_o upon_o the_o divine_a learning_n this_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o come_v from_o christ_n transmit_v to_o we_o by_o his_o companion_n to_o who_o all_o those_o who_o speak_v other_o way_n will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v of_o late_a date_n but_o to_o this_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n agree_v they_o do_v not_o like_a to_o be_v try_v only_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o true_a antiquity_n that_o be_v undoubted_o first_o before_o all_o other_o tradition_n a_o very_a bad_a sign_n this_o a_o infallible_a note_n all_o be_v not_o right_a among_o they_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o abide_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o cry_v up_o other_o tradition_n that_o be_v boast_v of_o what_o be_v late_a not_o what_o be_v first_o and_o what_o be_v after_o the_o first_o though_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n can_v certain_o be_v rely_v on_o because_o there_o be_v error_n and_o heresy_n so_o ancient_a that_o they_o spring_v up_o present_o after_o the_o first_o truth_n mere_a antiquity_n therefore_o be_v not_o a_o good_a proof_n for_o though_o the_o devil_n be_v not_o first_o yet_o he_o be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n be_v the_o old_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o ancient_a serpent_n who_o be_v a_o liar_n as_o well_o as_o a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o be_v so_o crafty_a as_o in_o process_n of_o time_n to_o make_v use_n of_o this_o argument_n to_o prove_v he_o be_v the_o ancient_n of_o day_n that_o be_v god._n and_o if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v something_o else_o whereby_o he_o may_v have_v be_v discover_v to_o be_v a_o serpent_n who_o can_v have_v contradict_v he_o or_o confute_v his_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n if_o they_o have_v be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o bare_a antiquity_n which_o be_v a_o proof_n so_o insufficient_a that_o god_n himself_o as_o you_o hear_v before_o out_o of_o st._n austin_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v god_n by_o antiquity_n but_o by_o eternity_n truth_n and_o error_n be_v bear_v so_o near_o together_o that_o after_o a_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n they_o can_v not_o be_v distinguish_v mere_o by_o their_o age._n no_o soon_o be_v man_n create_v but_o this_o serpent_n by_o his_o subtlety_n beguile_v eve._n and_o immediate_o after_o our_o redemption_n he_o attempt_v again_o to_o corrupt_v man_n mind_n from_o the_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n 2_o cor._n xi_o 3._o 1_o thess_n iii._o 5._o and_o according_o as_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n so_o there_o be_v together_o therewith_o a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n rev._n three_o 9_o there_o be_v depth_n of_o satan_n also_o and_o a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n which_o wrought_v even_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n as_o well_o as_o a_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n and_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god._n which_o wicked_a doctrine_n run_v down_o to_o posterity_n make_v use_v at_o length_n of_o the_o plea_n of_o antiquity_n to_o give_v they_o countenance_n and_o support_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v though_o it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a deceit_n for_o it_o be_v refute_v by_o the_o father_n in_o such_o remarkable_a word_n as_o these_o which_o give_v a_o deadly_a blow_n to_o the_o like_a plea_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n custom_n without_o truth_n be_v but_o the_o antiquity_n of_o error_n and_o there_o be_v a_o short_a way_n for_o religious_a and_o simple_a mind_n to_o find_v out_o what_o be_v truth_n for_o if_o we_o return_v to_o the_o beginning_n and_o original_a of_o divine_a tradition_n human_a error_n cease_v thither_o let_v
we_o return_v to_o our_o lord_n be_v original_a the_o evangelical_n beginning_n the_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o hence_o let_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o act_n arise_v from_o whence_o order_n and_o the_o beginning_n arise_v if_o therefore_o christ_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o regard_v what_o another_o before_o we_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v but_o what_o christ_n who_o be_v before_o all_o first_o do_v for_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o man_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n since_o god_n himself_o speak_v thus_o by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o men._n which_o very_a word_n our_o lord_n again_o repeat_v in_o the_o gospel_n you_o reject_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v establish_v your_o own_o tradition_n thus_o s._n cyprian_n oxon._n cyprian_n epist_n lxiii_o ad_fw-la caecilium_fw-la fratrem_fw-la &_o lxxiu_o add_v pompeium_n ed._n oxon._n with_o who_o tertullian_n 1._o tertullian_n l._n de_fw-fr veland_n virg._n c._n 1._o who_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v his_o master_n agree_v in_o many_o memorable_a say_n no_o body_n can_v prescribe_v against_o the_o truth_n neither_o space_n of_o time_n nor_o the_o patronage_n of_o person_n nor_o the_o privilege_n of_o country_n from_o which_o thing_n indeed_o custom_n have_v get_v a_o beginning_n by_o ignorance_n or_o simplicity_n and_o be_v grow_v strong_a by_o succession_n plead_v against_o truth_n but_o our_o lord_n christ_n call_v himself_o the_o truth_n not_o custom_n nor_o do_v novelty_n so_o much_o confute_v heresy_n as_o truth_n whatsoever_o be_v against_o truth_n that_o will_v be_v heresy_n even_o old_a custom_n truth_n do_v not_o stand_v xxviii_o stand_v l._n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la c._n xxviii_o in_o need_n of_o old_a custom_n to_o make_v it_o be_v believe_v nor_o do_v heresy_n fear_v the_o charge_n of_o novelty_n that_o which_o be_v plain_o false_a be_v make_v generous_a by_o antiquity_n for_o why_o shall_v i_o not_o call_v that_o false_a who_o proof_n be_v false_a why_o shall_v i_o believe_v pythagoras_n who_o tell_v lie_n that_o he_o may_v be_v believe_v i_o omit_v all_o the_o rest_n have_v say_v enough_o to_o show_v that_o if_o antiquity_n itself_o be_v to_o be_v credit_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o depend_v upon_o antiquity_n alone_o but_o seek_v for_o ancient_a truth_n which_o lead_v i_o to_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o undertake_v to_o show_v that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n vain_o pretend_v to_o true_a antiquity_n i.e._n to_o ancient_a truth_n ii_o the_o antiquity_n of_o a_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v seat_v for_o a_o new_a worship_n may_v come_v into_o a_o ancient_a place_n of_o worship_n as_o the_o new_a altar_n of_o ahaz_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o god_n of_o damascus_n 2_o king._n xuj_o 2_o chron._n xxviii_o 23_o nor_o do_v it_o consist_v mere_o in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o its_o founder_n for_o the_o apostle_n found_v many_o church_n which_o have_v all_o the_o same_o title_n to_o antiquity_n in_o this_o regard_n and_o yet_o continue_v not_o such_o church_n as_o they_o leave_v they_o but_o decay_a some_o of_o they_o so_o fast_o that_o what_o truth_n and_o goodness_n remain_v among_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v even_o before_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v dead_a rev._n three_o 2._o but_o it_o be_v true_a antiquity_n consist_v in_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o ancient_a truth_n entire_a and_o uncorrupted_a which_o it_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o which_o make_v it_o at_o first_o to_o be_v a_o church_n those_o thing_n be_v true_o ancient_a which_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o state_n after_o a_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n wherein_o they_o be_v at_o their_o beginning_n for_o if_o they_o have_v suffer_v any_o change_n in_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o their_o be_v and_o constitution_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o antiquity_n and_o become_v another_o thing_n than_o they_o be_v at_o the_o first_o now_o to_o know_v this_o we_o must_v inquire_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o understand_v for_o instance_n what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v a_o society_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god._n and_o all_o agree_v it_o be_v the_o christian_a truth_n in_o which_o if_o it_o have_v suffer_v alteration_n that_o be_v do_v not_o hold_v the_o same_o christian_a doctrine_n it_o do_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o have_v introduce_v error_n and_o lie_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o ancient_a truth_n it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o church_n it_o be_v at_o first_o and_o therefore_o have_v not_o that_o mark_n of_o true_a antiquity_n which_o will_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v such_o as_o it_o pretend_v now_o that_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v evident_a by_o that_o alteration_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n unto_o which_o they_o have_v add_v as_o many_o more_o article_n as_o there_o be_v at_o the_o first_o and_o thereby_o make_v such_o a_o change_n in_o their_o church_n for_o a_o change_n be_v make_v by_o add_v as_o well_o as_o take_v away_o as_o make_v it_o not_o to_o be_v the_o same_o ancient_a church_n which_o the_o apostle_n found_v at_o the_o beginning_n this_o charge_n they_o have_v no_o way_n to_o avoid_v nor_o can_v by_o any_o other_o mean_v maintain_v that_o they_o be_v such_o a_o ancient_a church_n as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n settle_v but_o by_o this_o ratiocination_n as_o bellarmin_n call_v it_o that_o in_o all_o great_a change_n of_o religion_n these_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v ever_o show_v 1._o the_o author_n of_o that_o change._n 2._o the_o new_a doctrine_n that_o be_v bring_v in_o 3._o the_o time_n when_o it_o begin_v 4._o the_o place_n where_o 5._o who_o oppose_v it_o 6._o and_o who_o join_v themselves_o to_o it_o none_o of_o which_o can_v be_v show_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o therefore_o there_o have_v be_v no_o change_n at_o all_o make_v in_o it_o but_o it_o remain_v the_o same_o it_o be_v at_o first_o without_o any_o alteration_n which_o be_v a_o reason_v build_v upon_o ground_n so_o notorious_o false_a that_o it_o scarce_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o poor_a piece_n of_o sophistry_n 1._o for_o first_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o history_n and_o experience_n which_o show_v we_o there_o have_v be_v great_a change_n the_o author_n and_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o can_v now_o be_v know_v though_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v there_o have_v be_v a_o alteration_n make_v for_o the_o body_n spiritual_a and_o civil_a too_o be_v like_o the_o body_n natural_a in_o which_o as_o there_o be_v some_o disease_n which_o make_v such_o a_o violent_a and_o sudden_a assault_n that_o one_o may_v say_v at_o what_o moment_n they_o begin_v so_o there_o be_v other_o which_o grow_v so_o insensible_o and_o by_o such_o slow_a degree_n that_o none_o can_v tell_v when_o the_o first_o alteration_n be_v make_v and_o by_o what_o accident_n from_o a_o good_a habit_n of_o body_n to_o a_o bad_a thus_o we_o be_v sure_o a_o man_n be_v in_o a_o deep_a consumption_n when_o we_o see_v he_o wear_v away_o to_o skin_n and_o bone_n though_o no_o body_n can_v tell_v the_o precise_a time_n when_o nor_o by_o what_o mean_n nor_o where_o and_o in_o what_o company_n his_o blood_n begin_v to_o be_v taint_v and_o thus_o we_o be_v sure_o there_o be_v a_o gangrene_n as_o st_n paul_n call_v heresy_n when_o we_o see_v it_o corrode_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n though_o it_o creep_v in_o so_o secret_o at_o the_o first_o and_o so_o indiscernable_o that_o it_o be_v not_o suspect_v nor_o can_v always_o be_v trace_v to_o its_o first_o occasion_n and_o original_a no_o the_o tare_n in_o the_o field_n which_o be_v another_o example_n whereby_o our_o lord_n himself_o illustrate_v this_o matter_n have_v take_v root_n before_o they_o be_v espy_v for_o they_o be_v sow_o in_o the_o night_n while_o man_n sleep_v and_o can_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o so_o that_o all_o that_o can_v be_v know_v be_v this_o that_o his_o enemy_n have_v do_v it_o that_o be_v the_o tare_n be_v not_o from_o our_o saviour_n nor_o be_v first_o sow_o but_o be_v of_o a_o late_a and_o quite_o different_a original_a but_o by_o what_o particular_a instrument_n the_o enemy_n sow_v they_o at_o what_o hour_n of_o the_o night_n by_o what_o hand_n and_o when_o do_v not_o appear_v for_o the_o matter_n be_v carry_v so_o secret_o and_o in_o the_o dark_a that_o the_o servant_n who_o know_v of_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o good_a seed_n in_o the_o field_n wonder_v to_o see_v the_o bad_a and_o ask_v
more_o evident_o prove_v to_o be_v no_o true_a catholic_n than_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n may_v in_o all_o those_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o themselves_o for_o as_o to_o point_n of_o mere_a belief_n how_o much_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n creed_n can_v they_o show_v we_o to_o have_v be_v receive_v always_o every_o where_o and_o by_o all_o christian_n but_o as_o for_o that_o large_a addition_n of_o tridentine_a article_n annex_v to_o that_o creed_n by_o p._n pius_n the_o four_o no_o unbiased_a person_n can_v believe_v they_o have_v ever_o do_v any_o thing_n like_o prove_v that_o any_o of_o they_o have_v be_v receive_v always_o and_o much_o less_o every_o where_n and_o by_o all_o those_o who_o themselves_o own_o for_o catholic_n christian_n 4._o by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n no_o society_n of_o christian_n can_v bid_v so_o fair_a for_o catholicism_n as_o the_o reform_a church_n but_o especial_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o avow_a principle_n it_o be_v to_o receive_v nothing_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 6._o artic._n 6._o or_o may_v be_v prove_v thereby_o nor_o do_v she_o embrace_v any_o one_o doctrine_n as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v clear_o express_v in_o those_o book_n of_o who_o canonicalness_n there_o never_o be_v the_o least_o dispute_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n second_o i_o proceed_v to_o show_v that_o if_o we_o shall_v acknowledge_v this_o to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n instead_o of_o enable_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v good_a her_o pretention_n of_o so_o be_v it_o will_v destroy_v it_o and_o instead_o of_o do_v disservice_n to_o the_o reform_a church_n it_o will_v do_v they_o excellent_a service_n and_o be_v a_o certain_a argument_n of_o their_o be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o 1._o i_o will_v show_v that_o it_o will_v not_o at_o all_o advantage_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o that_o her_o pretention_n and_o therefore_o can_v do_v we_o no_o prejudice_n the_o cardinal_n prove_v 1._o that_o his_o church_n begin_v to_o fructify_v throughout_o the_o world_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o these_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n col._n 1.6_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v come_v unto_o you_o as_o it_o be_v in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n as_o it_o do_v also_o in_o you_o etc._n etc._n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o his_o church_n be_v the_o gospel_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o do_v 2._o he_o add_v the_o authority_n of_o several_a father_n for_o this_o church_n be_v spread_v in_o their_o time_n all_o over_o the_o then_o know_a world_n but_o give_v we_o none_o of_o their_o say_n except_o st._n prosper_n the_o first_o father_n he_o cite_v be_v st._n irenaeus_n in_o the_o 3d_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n 53._o edit_fw-la paris_n p._n 53._o but_o the_o father_n here_o only_o say_v that_o this_o faith_n which_o he_o sum_v up_o immediate_o before_o and_o be_v but_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o church_n disseminated_a throughout_o the_o world_n diligent_o preserve_v as_o if_o it_o be_v confine_v but_o to_o one_o house_n but_o how_o do_v this_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v not_o once_o mention_v with_o other_o here_o particular_o name_v except_o we_o can_v be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o wheresoever_o the_o word_n church_n be_v find_v that_o church_n be_v still_o to_o be_v understand_v next_o he_o cite_v tertullian_n adversùs_fw-la judaeos_fw-la 189._o edit_fw-la rig._n p._n 189._o and_o have_v search_v that_o book_n these_o or_o none_o be_v the_o word_n he_o mean_v viz._n those_o word_n of_o david_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o apostle_n their_o sound_n be_v go_v forth_o in_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o word_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o in_o who_o have_v all_o nation_n believe_v but_o in_o christ_n who_o be_v now_o come_v the_o parthian_n mede_n elamites_n and_o those_o that_o inhabit_v mesopotamia_n armenia_n phrygia_n cappadocia_n pontus_n asia_n and_o pamphilia_n egypt_n africa_n and_o beyond_o cyrene_n the_o roman_n and_o jew_n now_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o other_o nation_n as_o now_o of_o the_o getuli_n and_o moor_n all_o spain_n divers_a country_n of_o the_o gaul_n and_o those_o of_o the_o britain_n which_o the_o roman_n can_v never_o conquer_v be_v subject_a to_o christ_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o again_o ask_v what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n more_o than_o to_o any_o other_o particular_a church_n belong_v to_o any_o one_o of_o the_o many_o nation_n of_o which_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n be_v one_o and_o two_o whole_a quarter_n of_o the_o world_n here_o mention_v his_o three_o father_n be_v st._n cyprian_n 100l_n edit_fw-la oxon._n p._n 100l_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o here_o be_v nothing_o he_o can_v fancy_v to_o be_v for_o his_o purpose_n except_o these_o word_n the_o church_n be_v one_o which_o by_o its_o fruitfulness_n be_v extend_v into_o a_o multitude_n as_o there_o be_v many_o ray_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o but_o one_o light_n etc._n etc._n so_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v fill_v with_o light_n send_v forth_o her_o beam_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v but_o one_o light_n which_o be_v diffuse_v everywhere_o but_o though_o this_o be_v say_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v here_o the_o least_o intimation_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o catholic_n church_n after_o st._n cyprian_n follow_v several_a of_o the_o late_a father_n their_o book_n be_v only_o direct_v to_o but_o the_o narrow_a room_n i_o be_o confine_v to_o will_v not_o permit_v i_o to_o examine_v they_o nor_o need_v we_o look_v any_o far_a to_o be_v satisfy_v how_o this_o great_a man_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n condescend_v to_o the_o most_o shameful_a impertinence_n in_o cite_v scripture_n and_o father_n for_o the_o do_v her_o service_n but_o we_o must_v not_o overlook_v st._n prosper_n verse_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ingratis_fw-la viz._n sedes_fw-la roma_fw-la petri_n quae_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la honoris_fw-la facta_fw-la caput_fw-la mundo_fw-la quicquid_fw-la non_fw-la possidet_fw-la armis_fw-la relligione_fw-la tenet_fw-la i._n e._n rome_n the_o seat_n of_o peter_n be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_n honour_n in_o the_o world_n whatsoever_o country_n she_o possess_v not_o by_o her_o arm_n she_o hold_v by_o her_o religion_n but_o consider_v how_o early_o this_o father_n live_v viz._n about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o five_o century_n he_o can_v mean_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o most_o honourable_a of_o all_o other_o by_o mean_n of_o that_o city_n be_v the_o ancient_a seat_n of_o the_o emperor_n keep_v still_o possession_n of_o those_o place_n by_o the_o religion_n they_o receive_v from_o she_o over_o which_o she_o have_v lose_v her_o old_a dominion_n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o another_o plain_a instance_n of_o most_o idle_a quote_v of_o ancient_a author_n not_o to_o reflect_v upon_o fetch_a argument_n from_o poetical_a flourish_v but_o not_o to_o stand_v to_o consider_v how_o ample_a the_o roman_a church_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o father_n nothing_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o that_o part_n of_o christendom_n she_o take_v up_o be_v but_o a_o small_a spot_n of_o ground_n compare_v with_o the_o space_n those_o church_n fill_v which_o though_o they_o hold_v communion_n with_o she_o be_v distinct_a church_n from_o she_o and_o own_v no_o subjection_n to_o her._n and_o it_o be_v about_o or_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o young_a of_o those_o father_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v invert_v by_o that_o execrable_a wretch_n phocas_n a_o bless_a title_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n with_o the_o primacy_n over_o all_o church_n and_o gregory_n the_o great_a who_o die_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o six_o century_n not_o only_o sharp_o inveigh_v against_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o his_o successor_n cyriacus_n for_o assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n though_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n of_o their_o design_v any_o thing_n more_o thereby_o than_o a_o addition_n of_o honour_n not_o of_o power_n to_o that_o patriarchate_o but_o also_o call_v those_o who_o shall_v affect_v such_o a_o haughty_a title_n 4._o greg._n epist_n 37._o &_o 70._o lib._n 11._o &_o ep._n 30._o l._n 4._o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n and_o as_o these_o bishop_n take_v this_o title_n be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o least_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o pope_n gregory_n calling_n
often_o fallacious_a way_n of_o argue_v however_o popular_a and_o that_o need_v less_o trouble_n in_o examination_n from_o person_n to_o thing_n whereas_o these_o will_v continue_v the_o same_o but_o they_o be_v changeable_a 1._o but_o than_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v of_o the_o roman_a succession_n that_o the_o case_n seem_v so_o extreme_o change_v since_o the_o first_o time_n so_o great_a a_o alteration_n there_o be_v in_o the_o person_n and_o in_o the_o office_n to_o which_o the_o succession_n be_v now_o come_v that_o it_o can_v hardly_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o same_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v all_o that_o we_o can_v find_v for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n lay_v claim_n to_o and_o our_o note_n be_v only_o concern_v in_o it_o though_o in_o some_o few_o single_a act_n it_o begin_v by_o degree_n to_o be_v stretch_v so_o as_o to_o put_v other_o bishop_n upon_o their_o guard_n and_o protestation_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o appeal_n by_o the_o african_n yet_o be_v all_o bishop_n own_v to_o have_v a_o equal_a share_n in_o that_o all_o to_o be_v of_o like_a power_n and_o authority_n all_o alike_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n whether_o at_o rome_n or_o in_o the_o mean_a city_n as_o in_o the_o know_a testimony_n in_o st._n cyprian_a and_o st._n jerom_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o papal_a power_n now_o challenge_v and_o exercise_v be_v so_o vast_o and_o wide_o different_a from_o episcopacy_n that_o scarce_o any_o propriety_n of_o speech_n can_v bring_v they_o under_o the_o same_o name_n but_o to_o come_v to_o matter_n of_o fact._n notwithstanding_o the_o high_a eulogium_n give_v by_o the_o ancient_n on_o particular_a occasion_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o bishop_n and_o the_o very_a bold_a effort_n and_o very_o lofty_a aspire_n of_o some_o of_o these_o yet_o he_o must_v have_v other_o eye_n or_o other_o spectacle_n than_o we_o can_v procure_v who_o can_v espy_v any_o thing_n like_o the_o supremacy_n and_o authority_n claim_v by_o the_o present_a papacy_n in_o the_o principle_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o more_o than_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o as_o have_v be_v observe_v can_v not_o but_o have_v be_v as_o discernible_a in_o all_o the_o history_n of_o those_o time_n as_o the_o reference_n to_o the_o power_n of_o our_o king_n and_o manner_n of_o our_o government_n must_v be_v in_o our_o own_o history_n 2._o far_o indeed_o there_o seem_v no_o great_a reason_n for_o they_o to_o be_v much_o concern_v at_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o very_o favourable_a to_o the_o very_a order_n we_o know_v what_o great_a opposition_n in_o their_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n meet_v with_o from_o the_o chief_a favourite_n of_o that_o see_v when_o the_o determination_n be_v so_o strong_o press_v by_o other_o 24._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n l._n 1._o c._n 8_o 9_o l._n 4._o c._n 24._o and_o the_o author_n of_o these_o note_n be_v pleat_v to_o determine_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v chief_o in_o the_o bishop_n but_o proper_o and_o entire_o monarchical_a in_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o that_o he_o derive_v his_o power_n immediate_o from_o christ_n but_o the_o bishop_n have_v they_o from_o he_o as_o to_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v government_n 3._o moreover_o they_o have_v the_o less_o reason_n to_o except_v against_o any_o church_n for_o the_o want_n of_o this_o apostolical_a order_n when_o their_o very_a catechism_n that_o multiply_v order_n with_o much_o less_o distinction_n of_o office_n make_v this_o no_o distinct_a order_n but_o only_o a_o different_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n the_o supreme_a order_n in_o their_o church_n ascend_v only_o gradual_o from_o that_o of_o a_o common_a presbyter_n to_o that_o of_o bishop_n arch-bishop_n patriarch_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o some_o of_o the_o intermediate_v we_o know_v admit_v no_o distinct_a ordination_n nay_o the_o pretend_a plenary_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n have_v sometime_o by_o particular_a delegation_n empower_v mitre_a abbot_n but_o mere_a presbyter_n to_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o two_o of_o the_o bishop_n if_o but_o one_o be_v present_a even_o in_o ordination_n itself_o and_o that_o of_o a_o bishop_n as_o bellarmine_n in_o this_o very_a note_n yield_v many_o other_o instance_n may_v be_v give_v of_o their_o endeavour_n to_o advance_v the_o first_o as_o it_o be_v on_o purpose_n to_o fence_v off_o the_o danger_n of_o a_o rival_n to_o what_o use_n else_o shall_v serve_v so_o many_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n long_o complain_v of_o their_o chief_a rise_n have_v be_v upon_o the_o depression_n of_o bishop_n and_o rob_v they_o of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n so_o quite_o opposite_a be_v the_o true_a case_n from_o the_o jealousy_n of_o some_o about_o this_o primitive_a order_n 4._o also_o they_o will_v have_v little_a cause_n to_o glory_n much_o in_o this_o pretend_a uninterrupted_a succession_n when_o they_o consider_v how_o many_o nullity_n according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n may_v dissolve_v and_o separate_v the_o close_a connexion_n thereof_o for_o beside_o confuse_a tumultuary_a and_o simoniacal_a promotion_n from_o which_o their_o own_o writer_n will_v scarce_o free_v some_o of_o they_o that_o one_o principle_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o any_o sacrament_n have_v need_n make_v they_o fearful_a of_o rely_v too_o much_o upon_o it_o for_o in_o case_n this_o be_v once_o want_v in_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a source_n through_o so_o long_a a_o tract_n of_o time_n variety_n of_o circumstance_n and_o different_a temper_n of_o person_n which_o many_o will_v think_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o suppose_v however_o can_v never_o be_v certain_o prove_v otherwise_o by_o this_o rule_n they_o can_v be_v secure_a of_o any_o order_n yea_o scarce_o of_o any_o true_a christian_a among_o they_o so_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o inquiry_n how_o insufficient_a a_o proof_n this_o will_v afford_v they_o of_o any_o great_a advantage_n 3_o inquiry_n 3_o indeed_o bellarmin_n himself_o seem_v so_o just_a as_o in_o part_n to_o yield_v this_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o four_o objection_n about_o this_o note_n he_o say_v a_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v that_o there_o the_o church_n be_v not_o where_o there_o be_v not_o this_o succession_n but_o it_o can_v thence_o necessary_o be_v gather_v that_o there_o the_o church_n be_v wheresoever_o this_o succession_n be_v so_o that_o it_o seem_v no_o positive_a proof_n with_o he_o wherefore_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o exclude_v the_o eastern_a church_n or_o break_v their_o succession_n upon_o pretence_n of_o heresy_n 1._o for_o first_o this_o succession_n be_v no_o sufficient_a evividence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n indeed_o be_v tradition_n so_o infallible_a a_o conveyance_n of_o truth_n as_o some_o man_n that_o talk_v of_o nothing_o below_o demonstration_n will_v vouch_v be_v it_o impossible_a for_o any_o new_a opinion_n to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n be_v it_o necessary_a that_o man_n must_v believe_v to_o day_n as_o they_o do_v yesterday_o and_o so_o in_o short_a as_o it_o be_v at_o one_o leap_v up_o to_o the_o very_a apostle_n and_o that_o the_o passage_n of_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n be_v able_a to_o make_v as_o little_a alteration_n in_o the_o memorial_n or_o evidence_n of_o what_o doctrine_n or_o rule_n of_o practice_n be_v first_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o the_o last_o night_n sleep_n do_v of_o what_o pass_v the_o day_n before_o then_o every_o church_n of_o apostolical_a foundation_n and_o such_o be_v all_o then_o plant_v have_v be_v and_o will_v still_o continue_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n think_v herself_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v any_o dispute_n about_o their_o tenet_n nor_o any_o such_o exception_n against_o their_o succession_n what_o security_n they_o have_v from_o the_o defection_n which_o other_o be_v charge_v with_o or_o have_v be_v find_v liable_a to_o what_o evidence_n may_v be_v produce_v that_o any_o church_n or_o company_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n may_v not_o add_v in_o process_n of_o time_n some_o doctrine_n and_o usage_n very_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v only_o with_o safety_n to_o be_v make_v into_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n alone_o by_o itself_o or_o its_o dependent_n we_o be_v yet_o to_o seek_v and_o much_o wonder_n that_o the_o ancient_n in_o all_o their_o dispute_n with_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n shall_v take_v so_o great_a a_o compass_n to_o confute_v their_o adversary_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o other_o authority_n beside_o what_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n afford_v and_o not_o with_o our_o
we_o of_o more_o than_o 200_o certain_o the_o argument_n from_o succession_n here_o be_v much_o strong_a the_o near_o it_o come_v to_o the_o original_a from_o which_o all_o the_o authority_n and_o virtue_n in_o the_o follow_a be_v derive_v the_o water_n may_v be_v suppose_v clear_a and_o more_o natural_a the_o near_o to_o the_o fountainhead_n there_o be_v at_o least_o some_o danger_n from_o every_o remove_n or_o change_v make_v i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v they_o themselves_o will_v hardly_o suppose_v they_o have_v a_o better_a argument_n from_o succession_n than_o those_o have_v 1200_o or_o more_o year_n since_o for_o if_o it_o be_v good_a now_o be_v sure_a it_o be_v so_o then_o but_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v alternate_o if_o then_o good_a it_o must_v hold_v so_o still_o the_o case_n may_v be_v presume_v much_o different_a in_o the_o succession_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n and_o secular_a in_o this_o latter_a it_o may_v be_v suppose_v the_o title_n gather_v still_o more_o strength_n by_o the_o length_n of_o its_o continuance_n be_v more_o confirm_v by_o long_a possession_n &_o many_o supper_n induct_v obligation_n but_o be_v it_o may_v be_v weak_a in_o its_o beginning_n as_o in_o most_o particular_a government_n now_o when_o of_o a_o mere_a human_a original_a so_o far_o as_o we_o may_v with_o due_a modesty_n and_o reverence_n look_v that_o way_n but_o spiritual_a power_n in_o whosoever_o where_o legitimate_a can_v only_o descend_v at_o first_o from_o a_o immediate_a divine_a commission_n and_o that_o we_o may_v suppose_v gain_v nothing_o by_o pass_v through_o human_a hand_n and_o infirmity_n be_v most_o strong_a and_o powerful_a in_o its_o first_o rise_n indeed_o do_v the_o cardinal_n only_o argue_v for_o a_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a monarchy_n and_o will_v he_o be_v content_a to_o begin_v it_o after_o pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o and_o then_o to_o rise_v by_o degree_n for_o a_o while_n succession_n appear_v to_o i_o the_o best_a argument_n they_o have_v however_o it_o be_v much_o easy_a to_o show_v fair_a evidence_n of_o the_o unaltered_a conveyance_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n from_o one_o to_o another_o when_o it_o have_v go_v through_o so_o few_o hand_n and_o that_o the_o elder_a bear_v its_o date_n but_o a_o very_a few_o century_n of_o as_o irenaeus_n express_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v l._n 3._o c._n 3._o and_o epiphanius_n hom._n 27._o carpocrat_n p._n 104._o than_o it_o can_v be_v when_o they_o be_v multiply_v to_o the_o present_a number_n and_o the_o footstep_n of_o its_o continue_a passage_n be_v almost_o wear_v out_o through_o so_o long_a a_o tract_n of_o time_n and_o numerous_a cross_a accident_n yet_o to_o give_v they_o their_o due_n the_o eminent_a zeal_n of_o several_a of_o their_o first_o bishop_n that_o seal_v to_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n with_o their_o blood_n be_v still_o as_o it_o be_v in_o view_n of_o their_o persecutor_n their_o general_a constancy_n thereto_o in_o which_o so_o many_o waver_v or_o fall_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n persecution_n the_o relief_n and_o refuge_n they_o then_o and_o after_o afford_v to_o such_o as_o suffer_v in_o that_o or_o like_a cause_n as_o well_o as_o the_o prerogative_n of_o their_o place_n in_o the_o imperial_a city_n and_o the_o current_a tradition_n of_o their_o church_n first_o foundation_n by_o the_o joint_a labour_n of_o those_o chief_a apostle_n st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n these_o give_v they_o great_a credit_n in_o those_o age_n and_o while_o they_o use_v their_o power_n so_o well_o every_o one_o be_v ready_a to_o enlarge_v it_o and_o to_o flee_v thither_o for_o sanctuary_n when_o oppress_v in_o which_o case_n man_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o speak_v bountiful_o of_o their_o patron_n and_o no_o marvel_n if_o they_o single_v out_o sometime_o so_o venerable_a a_o name_n and_o authority_n to_o oppose_v and_o even_o to_o bear_v down_o the_o impertinent_a obstinacy_n and_o peevish_a presumption_n of_o every_o new_a upstart_n schismatic_a or_o heretic_n that_o will_v dictate_v to_o we_o strange_a and_o unheard-of_a principle_n and_o unchurch_n all_o before_o or_o beside_o themselves_o and_o must_v begin_v the_o date_n of_o it_o from_o themselves_o for_o thus_o most_o of_o the_o citation_n mention_v be_v plain_o level_v and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n we_o shall_v judge_v the_o argue_v sufficient_a still_o to_o silence_v such_o a_o insolent_a boaster_n though_o we_o shall_v begin_v the_o succession_n no_o soon_o than_o the_o time_n they_o end_v and_o when_o we_o own_o religion_n begin_v to_o decline_v in_o some_o part_n but_o sure_o not_o to_o expire_v nay_o i_o can_v add_v though_o we_o shall_v rise_v no_o high_o than_o the_o reformation_n itself_o as_o late_o as_o it_o be_v and_o how_o contemptuous_o soever_o they_o be_v please_v sometime_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o happy_a instrument_n thereof_o a_o extraordinary_a providence_n also_o seem_v to_o have_v attend_v the_o preservation_n of_o they_o so_o long_o under_o the_o arian_n gothick_n king_n and_o a_o strange_a temporal_a felicity_n in_o be_v still_o gainer_n in_o the_o end_n by_o all_o the_o invasion_n and_o calamity_n incident_a to_o so_o many_o change_n of_o government_n by_o which_o most_o beside_o be_v loser_n but_o i_o shall_v think_v if_o they_o consult_v scripture_n reason_n and_o experience_n of_o former_a example_n with_o present_a sensible_a observation_n more_o than_o any_o fancy_a scheme_n and_o model_n of_o their_o own_o what_o they_o will_v judge_n best_a to_o have_v do_v they_o may_v think_v it_o not_o unlikely_a at_o least_o be_v more_o willing_a to_o stand_v to_o the_o trial_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o so_o that_o upon_o so_o long_a a_o continue_a and_o still_o grow_a accession_n of_o wealth_n and_o greatness_n to_o their_o church_n many_o and_o great_a corruption_n may_v creep_v in_o which_o we_o charge_v they_o with_o and_o have_v only_o remove_v by_o the_o reformation_n without_o turn_v they_o or_o our_o ancestor_n out_o of_o the_o church_n before_o or_o ourselves_o since_o if_o the_o favour_n they_o have_v so_o long_o enjoy_v make_v they_o more_o industrious_a and_o cautious_a in_o the_o examination_n of_o themselves_o to_o reform_v whatever_o they_o can_v find_v amiss_o and_o to_o be_v more_o charitable_o helpful_a and_o beneficial_a to_o other_o they_o will_v be_v far_o better_a employ_v than_o in_o grasp_a at_o still_o more_o power_n and_o justify_v all_o that_o they_o teach_v or_o do_v by_o the_o oft_o to_o we_o unaccountable_a success_n of_o providence_n which_o the_o worst_a cause_n have_v flee_v to_o for_o shelter_n and_o the_o worst_a man_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o plead_v god_n almighty_n give_v we_o all_o grace_n entire_o to_o devote_v all_o our_o study_n and_o labour_n to_o the_o service_n of_o our_o great_a master_n and_o the_o best_a and_o most_o certain_a benefit_n of_o his_o church_n in_o the_o furtherance_n of_o sound_a faith_n and_o universal_a holiness_n of_o life_n in_o all_o true_a piety_n probity_n charity_n and_o peaceable_a communion_n among_o all_o that_o in_o every_o place_n call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o and_o we_o which_o will_v afford_v we_o a_o far_o more_o comfortable_a reckon_a at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o account_n than_o to_o busy_v ourselves_o in_o thrust_v all_o beside_o out_o of_o the_o church_n here_o and_o pronounce_v condemnation_n against_o they_o for_o hereafter_o or_o on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o carry_v on_o still_o unaccountable_a prejudices_fw-la and_o endless_a separation_n the_o god_n of_o wisdom_n truth_n and_o peace_n will_v i_o hope_v at_o length_n give_v we_o a_o right_a understanding_n in_o all_o thing_n the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o six_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n sexta._fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la conspiratio_fw-la in_o doctrinâ_fw-la cum_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la antiquâ_fw-la bellar._n l._n four_o c._n 9_o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la may_v 19_o 1687._o guil._n needham_n we_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o own_o this_o for_o a_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n its_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o confute_v bellarmin_n for_o his_o give_v of_o it_o that_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o he_o have_v hereby_o confute_v himself_o and_o the_o whole_a cause_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o if_o we_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o go_v back_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o that_o in_o order_n to_o find_v out_o what_o be_v the_o true_a church_n at_o present_a than_o the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o receive_v and_o believe_v all_o
and_o receive_v as_o such_o when_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v so_o before_o and_o how_o then_o do_v that_o differ_v from_o make_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n speak_v plain_o out_o though_o against_o his_o own_o note_n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o latter_a time_n have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o explain_v and_o declare_v but_o constitute_v and_o command_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith_n pontif._n faith_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la sum._n pontif._n if_o the_o present_a church_n have_v a_o power_n to_o make_v more_o doctrine_n and_o article_n be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n than_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n than_o it_o may_v make_v addition_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o make_v that_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v at_o one_o time_n which_o be_v not_o at_o another_o if_o it_o have_v not_o this_o power_n let_v they_o declare_v it_o and_o not_o count_v other_o heretic_n who_o receive_v all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a council_n and_o believe_v all_o those_o doctrine_n that_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n in_o all_o place_n and_o at_o all_o time_n ever_o hold_v here_o with_o lyrinensis_n we_o fix_v and_o set_v our_o foot_n and_o here_o we_o resolve_v to_o stand_v and_o keep_v our_o ground_n and_o not_o be_v move_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n that_o shall_v blow_v out_o of_o a_o new_a quarter_n and_o that_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o present_a church_n shall_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n when_o it_o be_v never_o so_o declare_v by_o the_o primitive_a to_o say_v that_o they_o have_v make_v no_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o church_n but_o only_o the_o same_o article_n make_v explicit_fw-la which_o be_v implicit_a before_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v no_o new_a man_n in_o the_o world_n since_o adam_n or_o noah_n but_o only_o the_o same_o man_n that_o be_v before_o implicit_a in_o their_o loin_n be_v now_o explicit_o bear_v into_o the_o world._n thus_o the_o church_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o fruitful_a in_o produce_v doctrine_n and_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o never_o be_v before_o in_o the_o church_n yet_o make_v nothing_o new_a and_o however_o spurious_a its_o doctrine_n may_v be_v and_o however_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o forefather_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o species_n i'faith_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v but_o a_o embryo_n or_o like_o a_o small_a seed_n or_o kernel_n implicit_o contain_v all_o the_o part_n entire_a but_o in_o little_a but_o when_o it_o be_v grow_v up_o and_o enlarge_v by_o the_o explicit_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n than_o it_o may_v swell_v into_o a_o mighty_a bigness_n and_o increase_v even_o into_o the_o large_a tridentine_a bulk_n and_o be_v it_o never_o so_o unlike_o the_o former_a yet_o it_o must_v be_v call_v the_o same_o still_o but_o if_o this_o implicit_a faith_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o primitive_a church_n why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v so_o for_o the_o present_a and_o what_o need_n have_v we_o of_o a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n to_o save_v we_o now_o than_o they_o have_v to_o save_v they_o then_o all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v at_o all_o time_n and_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o we_o must_v be_v now_o oblige_v to_o a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n and_o a_o more_o implicit_a obedience_n than_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v ever_o acquaint_v with_o but_o after_o all_o i_o hope_v those_o doctrine_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o then_o implicit_o believe_v by_o it_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o i_o be_o sure_a most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o different_a from_o the_o reform_a be_v not_o her_o implicit_a doctrine_n but_o unless_o error_n may_v be_v fold_v up_o with_o truth_n and_o one_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n may_v be_v involve_v in_o the_o other_o the_o late_a corruption_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o her_o trent_n article_n be_v no_o way_n contain_v in_o the_o quite_o different_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o thus_o because_o i_o have_v go_v too_o far_o with_o this_o discourse_n i_o must_v abrupt_o take_v leave_n of_o bellarmin_n and_o his_o church_n though_o i_o resolve_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o keep_v always_o to_o this_o his_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o to_o that_o church_n in_o which_o i_o be_o which_o be_v the_o most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o primitive_a of_o any_o in_o the_o world_n both_o as_o to_o doctrine_n and_o every_o thing_n else_o the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o seven_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n septima_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la vnio_n membrorum_fw-la 〈…〉_o inter_fw-la se_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la capite_fw-la bellar._n l._n four_o c._n 10._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la may_v 26._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n the_o church_n as_o the_o cardinal_n observe_v be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n one_o body_n one_o spouse_n one_o sheepfold_a but_o he_o that_o infer_v from_o hence_o that_o unity_n be_v a_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n aught_o to_o be_v very_o well_o assure_v that_o the_o head_n and_o member_n be_v unite_v nowhere_o but_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o harlot_n can_v be_v one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o spouse_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o world_n have_v hitherto_o be_v persuade_v that_o bare_a unity_n be_v a_o character_n to_o be_v find_v upon_o society_n of_o different_a nature_n and_o contrary_a design_n that_o of_o itself_o it_o infer_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a and_o may_v belong_v to_o a_o body_n of_o rebel_n no_o less_o than_o to_o a_o army_n of_o loyal_a subject_n unity_n be_v then_o indeed_o a_o good_a mark_n when_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n when_o the_o term_n of_o union_n be_v so_o for_o which_o reason_n the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o excellent_a because_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o follow_v that_o truth_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o these_o be_v best_a preserve_v and_o maintain_v by_o union_n among_o those_o who_o follow_v they_o for_o which_o reason_n also_o it_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o gospel_n with_o variety_n of_o expression_n but_o to_o argue_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o union_n of_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o head_n be_v a_o proper_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v just_a as_o if_o i_o shall_v conclude_v upon_o see_v a_o thousand_o man_n march_v in_o good_a order_n and_o with_o equal_a pace_n after_o their_o leader_n that_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v be_v go_v to_o york_n notwithstanding_o therefore_o this_o argument_n from_o unity_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o church_n the_o cardinal_n do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o leave_v his_o mark_n so_o very_o loose_a and_o common_a but_o slip_v into_o the_o mention_n of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v as_o he_o pretend_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o head_n with_o which_o the_o member_n be_v unite_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o as_o for_o their_o union_n among_o themselves_o he_o afterward_o prove_v that_o all_o catholic_n must_v needs_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n since_o they_o all_o submit_v their_o own_o sense_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o chief_a pastor_n guide_v the_o church_n from_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o other_o pastor_n so_o that_o now_o we_o know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o their_o head_n and_o among_o themselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o their_o head_n and_o their_o union_n among_o themselves_o in_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o teach_v from_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n etc._n etc._n which_o note_n do_v for_o its_o part_n make_v good_a what_o be_v observe_v at_o first_o concern_v the_o general_a design_n of_o these_o note_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o describe_v to_o we_o the_o proper_a character_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n as_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n whatever_o the_o cardinal_n insinuate_v at_o first_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o sensible_a that_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n
ignorance_n our_o adversary_n know_v by_o some_o experience_n and_o we_o may_v say_v without_o need_n of_o blush_v for_o the_o matter_n that_o they_o have_v feel_v some_o learning_n from_o this_o church_n which_o their_o union_n to_o the_o pope_n have_v of_o late_o help_v very_o few_o of_o they_o to_o and_o if_o we_o may_v conclude_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o example_n of_o those_o within_o their_o own_o communion_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o more_o close_o any_o of_o they_o be_v unite_v to_o this_o suppose_a head_n their_o piety_n and_o learning_n do_v not_o flourish_v one_o jot_n the_o more_o for_o it_o let_v the_o learning_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n be_v compare_v with_o that_o of_o spain_n or_o italy_n let_v the_o piety_n of_o the_o regulars_n especial_o of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v weigh_v with_o that_o of_o the_o secular_a clergy_n and_o i_o believe_v it_o will_v appear_v that_o this_o union_n be_v no_o such_o excellent_a advantage_n either_o towards_o piety_n or_o learning_n that_o they_o shall_v appeal_v to_o experience_n to_o show_v the_o necessity_n thereof_o either_o to_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o their_o union_n to_o the_o pope_n 2._o neither_o be_v the_o union_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o among_o themselves_o as_o member_n any_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o cardinal_n be_v not_o content_a to_o describe_v their_o union_n by_o think_v the_o same_o concern_v all_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n but_o will_v have_v it_o to_o exclude_v also_o discord_n and_o dissension_n and_o fall_v into_o sect_n and_o party_n for_o since_o he_o deny_v such_o union_n to_o be_v find_v among_o pagan_n and_o heretic_n he_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o affirm_v it_o of_o the_o member_n of_o his_o church_n if_o he_o talk_v to_o any_o purpose_n now_o admit_v it_o be_v so_o 1._o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o any_o society_n may_v have_v as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a church_n and_o any_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a the_o member_n of_o every_o church_n be_v thus_o far_o unite_v that_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o profess_v the_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o society_n to_o which_o they_o belong_v but_o about_o other_o doctrine_n they_o either_o fall_v into_o dissension_n or_o not_o as_o it_o happen_v and_o for_o some_o considerable_a time_n they_o may_v agree_v very_o well_o and_o at_o length_n fall_v out_o in_o which_o case_n according_a to_o bellarmin_n note_n they_o will_v be_v the_o true_a church_n while_o they_o agree_v whatever_o their_o faith_n shall_v be_v which_o be_v most_o absurd_a it_o be_v not_o whether_o man_n be_v unite_v among_o themselves_o in_o what_o they_o believe_v but_o whether_o that_o wherein_o they_o be_v unite_v be_v the_o right_a faith_n that_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v union_n in_o a_o false_a way_n be_v a_o confederacy_n in_o error_n and_o the_o more_o that_o man_n be_v unite_v in_o it_o the_o more_o wise_a or_o prudent_a they_o may_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v but_o never_o the_o more_o orthodox_n and_o though_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v that_o say_v of_o our_o saviour_n every_o kingdom_n divide_v against_o itself_o twelve_o matth._n twelve_o be_v bring_v to_o desolation_n to_o show_v that_o discord_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n yet_o he_o have_v manifest_o pervert_v the_o place_n inasmuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n discourse_n there_o proceed_v upon_o the_o contrary_a supposition_n viz._n that_o satan_n be_v not_o divide_v against_o himself_o 2._o as_o there_o may_v be_v this_o union_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n so_o it_o may_v not_o be_v within_o it_o which_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o this_o be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v undeniable_a that_o there_o be_v division_n in_o the_o first_o apostolical_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n consist_v all_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o if_o the_o cardinal_n mean_v that_o the_o break_n of_o a_o church_n into_o party_n and_o the_o rise_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n out_o of_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o false_a church_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v that_o there_o never_o be_v a_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n no_o not_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o if_o for_o this_o reason_n he_o will_v unchurch_n the_o protestant_n he_o do_v in_o effect_n put_v as_o good_a a_o argument_n as_o this_o against_o the_o reformation_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o turk_n or_o a_o jew_n against_o christianity_n that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o it_o at_o all_o and_o because_o christian_n be_v so_o divide_v one_o against_o another_o therefore_o none_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n for_o a_o more_o particular_a consideration_n of_o this_o argument_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o apologetical_a vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n late_o publish_v thus_o much_o for_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n which_o be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v not_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n i_o proceed_v to_o show_v ii_o that_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o which_o be_v probable_o true_a of_o the_o first_o and_o most_o certain_o true_a of_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o cardinal_n unity_n 1._o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n want_v the_o first_o and_o that_o there_o be_v now_o no_o true_a pope_n nor_o have_v be_v for_o many_o age_n for_o that_o church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o for_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n a_o pope_n simoniacal_o choose_v a_o pope_n intrude_v by_o violence_n a_o heretic_n and_o therefore_o sure_a a_o atheist_n or_o a_o infidel_n be_v no_o true_a pope_n and_o many_o such_o there_o have_v be_v of_o one_o sort_n or_o other_o who_o act_n therefore_o in_o create_v cardinal_n etc._n etc._n be_v invalid_a it_o be_v exceed_o probable_a that_o the_o whole_a succession_n have_v upon_o this_o account_n fail_v long_o ago_o beside_o there_o have_v be_v about_o 25_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o last_o of_o which_o continue_v no_o less_o than_o 50_o year_n wherein_o two_o and_o sometime_o three_o pope_n pretend_v to_o st._n peter_n chair_n create_v cardinal_n have_v their_o several_a party_n and_o abettor_n etc._n etc._n during_o which_o schism_n it_o will_v be_v a_o madness_n to_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n when_o they_o be_v all_o together_o by_o the_o ear_n which_o of_o the_o anti-popes_n be_v the_o true_a one_o now_o while_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a pope_n there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o validity_n of_o any_o act_n necessary_a to_o continue_v a_o succession_n of_o true_a pope_n but_o this_o case_n have_v happen_v so_o often_o and_o sometime_o continue_v for_o many_o year_n the_o uncertainty_n must_v have_v at_o last_o grow_v into_o a_o utter_a improbability_n that_o they_o have_v a_o pope_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o cardinal_n that_o they_o be_v a_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v all_o one_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v unite_v with_o a_o nominal_a pope_n or_o a_o real_a pope_n with_o a_o true_a head_n or_o a_o false_a head_n or_o any_o head_n whatsoever_o but_o 2._o it_o be_v undoubted_o true_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o unity_n viz._n that_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o one_o another_o which_o the_o cardinal_n pretend_v whether_o by_o it_o he_o mean_v a_o union_n in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n of_o great_a consequence_n among_o those_o who_o remain_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o pretend_a catholic_n church_n or_o such_o a_o union_n of_o their_o member_n as_o shall_v prevent_v the_o break_n away_o of_o some_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o rest_n she_o have_v not_o the_o former_a unity_n for_o if_o philosopher_n heretic_n etc._n etc._n have_v have_v their_o sect_n and_o party_n and_o be_v at_o great_a dissension_n among_o themselves_o so_o have_v the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n too_o he_o pretend_v that_o all_o the_o sacred_a writer_n of_o their_o church_n do_v wonderful_o agree_v now_o to_o let_v pass_v his_o presumption_n in_o suppose_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v one_o part_n of_o these_o their_o writer_n we_o will_v for_o the_o present_n admit_v it_o and_o only_o ask_v if_o they_o agree_v so_o wonderful_o with_o the_o father_n what_o need_v there_o be_v of_o a_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la upon_o the_o father_n to_o make_v they_o and_o the_o father_n of_o trent_n agree_v something_o better_a he_o pretend_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o lawful_a council_n agree_v in_o conveniunt_fw-la in_o
in_o omnibus_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la conveniunt_fw-la all_o doctrine_n just_o so_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n decree_a that_o all_o power_n even_o the_o papal_a be_v in_o thing_n appertain_v to_o religion_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o council_n agree_v with_o the_o abolition_n of_o the_o pragmatic_n sanction_n by_o the_o lateran_n council_n under_o leo_n x_o by_o which_o the_o council_n be_v make_v to_o truckle_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o which_o and_o other_o instance_n of_o the_o like_a sort_n no_o help_n be_v to_o be_v have_v from_o that_o qualification_n of_o lawful_a council_n since_o what_o the_o jesuit_n will_v not_o own_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a council_n be_v by_o other_o party_n in_o that_o church_n own_v to_o be_v so_o and_o that_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v at_o wonderful_a unity_n within_o itself_o that_o can_v so_o much_o as_o agree_v what_o council_n be_v lawful_a and_o what_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o if_o they_o be_v so_o agree_v their_o church-unity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v brag_v of_o when_o there_o be_v enough_o among_o they_o to_o make_v a_o unlawful_a council_n and_o to_o determine_v otherwise_o in_o a_o point_n of_o so_o vast_a consequence_n as_o that_o abovementioned_a than_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v for_o if_o in_o the_o same_o communion_n one_o council_n determine_v one_o way_n and_o another_o the_o contrary_a way_n that_o communion_n can_v be_v say_v to_o agree_v ever_o the_o more_o for_o one_o be_v a_o lawful_a and_o the_o other_o a_o unlawful_a council_n whereas_o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n be_v also_o at_o unity_n with_o one_o another_o one_o will_v expect_v that_o in_o the_o next_o place_n fire_n and_o water_n shall_v be_v bring_v in_o for_o a_o example_n of_o agreement_n too_o for_o they_o may_v be_v make_v to_o agree_v as_o soon_o as_o the_o decree_n of_o many_o pope_n leo_n and_o gelasius_n condemn_v receive_v in_o one_o kind_n 12._o de_fw-fr consecr_n dist_n 2._o cap._n 12._o have_v there_o be_v no_o pope_n since_o that_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a nicholas_n iv_o determine_a that_o christ_n be_v a_o beggar_n 4._o extravag_n joh._n tit._n 14._o cap._n 4._o and_o have_v right_o to_o nothing_o but_o john_n xxii_o come_v not_o long_o after_o he_o and_o make_v it_o heretical_a so_o to_o say_v it_o have_v be_v so_o frequent_a a_o practice_n for_o pope_n to_o overthrow_v the_o decree_n of_o their_o predecessor_n that_o it_o be_v endless_a to_o recount_v the_o particular_n as_o for_o the_o writer_n which_o they_o may_v just_o claim_v to_o themselves_o how_o bellarmin_n shall_v come_v to_o fancy_v such_o a_o wonderful_a agreement_n be_v very_o strange_a who_o in_o his_o own_o controversy_n have_v observe_v so_o many_o notable_a difference_n among_o they_o alibi_fw-la de_fw-fr council_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 14._o &_o alibi_fw-la be_v it_o not_o bellarmin_n that_o observe_v several_a catholic_n writer_n to_o have_v agree_v with_o the_o heretic_n in_o assert_v the_o council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o as_o those_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o themselves_o so_o neither_o do_v the_o other_o side_n of_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n that_o assert_v the_o contrary_a and_o this_o be_v no_o trifle_a question_n neither_o such_o disagreement_n be_v note_v by_o the_o same_o cardinal_n upon_o other_o material_a point_n viz._n concern_v the_o pope_n temporal_a power_n whether_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n be_v dispensable_a what_o worship_n may_v be_v give_v to_o image_n whether_o image_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v or_o not_o whether_o extreme_a unction_n and_o other_o of_o their_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n whether_o intention_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o sacrament_n whether_o a_o express_a purpose_n of_o forsake_v sin_n be_v necessary_a to_o contrition_n whether_o good_a work_n be_v true_o meritorious_a and_o concern_v many_o more_o question_n in_o most_o of_o which_o some_o or_o other_o of_o themselves_o have_v hold_v as_o protestant_n do_v against_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o church_n not_o to_o insist_v upon_o the_o dispute_n between_o the_o thomist_n the_o scotist_n and_o the_o occamist_n which_o be_v not_o all_o about_o trifle_n the_o question_n between_o the_o dominican_n and_o franciscan_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n be_v by_o themselves_o esteem_v of_o such_o consequence_n that_o there_o have_v be_v revelation_n about_o it_o against_o revelation_n and_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v they_o miracle_n against_o miracle_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v the_o flame_a contention_n between_o the_o jansenist_n and_o the_o molinist_n 10._o see_v veteres_n vindicat._n c._n 10._o both_o which_o grow_v to_o such_o a_o height_n that_o it_o have_v be_v all_o along_o almost_o as_o dangerous_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o let_v their_o controversy_n go_v on_o as_o to_o go_v about_o to_o decide_v they_o i_o confess_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o new_a methodist_n the_o french_a expositor_n and_o the_o english_a representer_n have_v as_o yet_o occasion_v but_o little_a disturbance_n in_o that_o communion_n for_o which_o i_o know_v a_o good_a reason_n but_o this_o i_o will_v say_v that_o if_o their_o new-popery_n can_v in_o all_o point_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o old_a 90._o see_v defence_n of_o exp._n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ch._n of_o england_n p._n 90._o i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o their_o unity_n may_v be_v inviolable_a now_o that_o they_o have_v get_v the_o knack_n of_o make_v contradiction_n agree_v with_o one_o another_o but_o to_o all_o such_o instance_n as_o these_o bellarmine_n have_v supply_v they_o with_o a_o ready_a answer_n that_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o faith._n upon_o which_o cautious_a answer_n one_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o inquire_v how_o near_o a_o question_n in_o religion_n must_v be_v ally_v to_o the_o faith_n before_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o belong_v to_o it_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o tell_v we_o now_o and_o then_o of_o something_o hold_v by_o catholic_n that_o be_v fere_n haereticum_fw-la as_o he_o call_v it_o almost_o heretical_a in_o which_o case_n the_o question_n shall_v be_v also_o almost_o of_o faith_n and_o may_v be_v say_v to_o belong_v to_o it_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v simple_o that_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o say_v afterward_o and_o that_o all_o catholic_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n about_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o be_v tell_v before_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o hear_v he_o but_o then_o we_o expect_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o calvinist_n shall_v be_v hear_v too_o when_o to_o the_o papist_n charge_v they_o with_o some_o difference_n they_o make_v the_o same_o answer_n that_o they_o have_v all_o the_o same_o faith_n especial_o since_o when_o they_o come_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o they_o say_v they_o will_v show_v that_o the_o matter_n wherein_o they_o differ_v do_v not_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v something_o a_o better_a argument_n than_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v for_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o party_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n viz._n that_o they_o all_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v judge_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n for_o to_o say_v no_o more_o to_o this_o at_o present_a notwithstanding_o this_o profession_n we_o be_v very_o sure_o that_o some_o of_o they_o take_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n which_o other_o do_v not_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v they_o of_o which_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o depose_v doctrine_n be_v notorious_a and_o undeniable_a instance_n but_o now_o if_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n shall_v be_v mean_v such_o a_o union_n as_o will_v hinder_v the_o separation_n of_o some_o from_o the_o rest_n then_o this_o note_n must_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n be_v pretend_v to_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o which_o so_o many_o church_n that_o once_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o she_o have_v break_v away_o indeed_o he_o do_v not_o express_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v this_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o but_o some_o such_o thing_n he_o must_v mean_v or_o else_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o note_n he_o do_v impertinent_o run_v down_o the_o lutheran_n as_o be_v heretic_n because_o they_o have_v beget_v so_o many_o sect_n which_o as_o he_o pretend_v charge_v each_o other_o with_o heresy_n and_o then_o it_o may_v as_o true_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o who_o communion_n we_o be_v before_o the_o reformation_n want_v the_o mark_n of_o unity_n because_o so_o many_o have_v break_v away_o from_o she_o as_o that_o any_o other_o church_n want_v it_o because_o some_o
we_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n 4._o there_o be_v also_o a_o unity_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o institution_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o instance_n of_o unity_n that_o ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v forget_v this_o be_v no_o less_o a_o common_a duty_n than_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o performance_n whereof_o unit_v we_o effectual_o to_o he_o as_o to_o our_o head_n and_o make_v we_o live_v member_n of_o his_o body_n 5._o there_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o christian_a affection_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n of_o which_o our_o lord_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v by_o this_o shall_v all_o man_n know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o love_v one_o another_o thus_o st._n paul_n twelve_o 1_o cor._n twelve_o the_o member_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o care_n one_o of_o another_o etc._n etc._n 6._o there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o discipline_n and_o government_n which_o be_v maintain_v chief_o by_o retain_v for_o substance_n the_o same_o form_n that_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n confederate_v together_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o their_o flock_n by_o regard_v every_o regular_a act_n of_o authority_n in_o one_o church_n as_o the_o act_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o give_v no_o occasion_n to_o breach_n of_o christian-communion_n by_o abuse_v a_o lawful_a or_o by_o claim_v a_o undue_a authority_n etc._n etc._n 7._o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o glorify_v god_n with_o one_o mouth_n in_o join_v in_o the_o same_o religious_a assembly_n for_o prayer_n and_o sacrament_n for_o act_n of_o common_a piety_n and_o devotion_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o need_v not_o mention_v any_o more_o instance_n of_o christian_a unity_n since_o those_o that_o be_v more_o particular_a may_v be_v easy_o deduce_v from_o these_o now_o to_o speak_v clear_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v all_o these_o kind_n and_o instance_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n but_o we_o see_v evident_o that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o there_o i_o mean_v in_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o all_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n how_o necessary_a soever_o they_o may_v be_v whether_o to_o the_o wellbeing_n of_o it_o or_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o person_n whereof_o the_o church_n consist_v but_o some_o of_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o be_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o one_o lord_n the_o profession_n of_o the_o one_o faith_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o state_n of_o christian_a duty_n and_o privilege_n by_o one_o baptism_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v find_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o as_o unity_n in_o these_o thing_n be_v spread_v and_o obtain_v in_o the_o world_n so_o far_o and_o no_o far_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n propagate_v because_o it_o be_v one_o by_o this_o unity_n but_o then_o indeed_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o far_a unity_n a_o unity_n of_o observe_v all_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n a_o unity_n of_o christian_a charity_n and_o good_a will_n a_o unity_n of_o government_n and_o discipline_n a_o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o religious_a assembly_n to_o which_o i_o will_v add_v also_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o care_n to_o keep_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n all_o dangerous_a error_n and_o unlawful_a practice_n and_o when_o such_o begin_v to_o appear_v much_o more_o if_o they_o have_v take_v root_n and_o be_v grow_v to_o a_o scandal_n to_o root_v they_o out_o again_o but_o unity_n in_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o run_v through_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o through_o that_o body_n which_o be_v one_o in_o the_o three_o former_a respect_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o one_o body_n in_o those_o late_a respect_n though_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o but_o because_o these_o be_v proper_a instance_n of_o church-unity_n though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o those_o particular_a church_n which_o keep_v unity_n in_o these_o respect_v better_a than_o other_o do_v have_v the_o mark_v of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o those_o other_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v not_o only_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o that_o also_o which_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o a_o pure_a church_n and_o be_v not_o only_o one_o body_n in_o those_o thing_n without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o one_o also_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v one_o with_o they_o we_o therefore_o according_a to_o truth_n allow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o she_o hold_v that_o one_o lord_n that_o one_o faith_n that_o one_o baptism_n which_o we_o hold_v &_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o and_o thus_o far_o she_o maintain_v catholic_n unity_n but_o inasmuch_o as_o she_o have_v violate_v the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n concern_v the_o other_o sacrament_n as_o in_o other_o respect_n so_o by_o withhold_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n notwithstanding_o he_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n even_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o catholic_n unity_n the_o unity_n of_o obedience_n because_o she_o will_v not_o be_v content_a to_o be_v a_o sister_n but_o claim_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n and_o have_v advance_v her_o bishop_n to_o be_v head_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o will_v have_v commuion_n with_o no_o other_o christian_a society_n but_o such_o as_o will_v be_v content_a to_o become_v her_o subject_n and_o will_v allow_v no_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o be_v valid_a but_o in_o a_o state_n of_o dependence_n upon_o she_o she_o have_v therefore_o depart_v from_o the_o catholic_n unity_n of_o government_n and_o discipline_n because_o she_o have_v bring_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n into_o her_o creed_n and_o practice_n suitable_a to_o such_o false_a doctrine_n into_o her_o worship_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o that_o purity_n of_o profess_v the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o all_o church_n shall_v be_v one_o and_o because_o she_o will_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o we_o but_o upon_o these_o term_n which_o be_v impossible_a she_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n communion_n final_o because_o she_o have_v pursue_v all_o christian_n that_o dare_v to_o open_v their_o mouth_n against_o these_o innovation_n with_o anathema_n etc._n etc._n and_o sacrifice_v the_o life_n of_o innumerable_a christian_n to_o her_o resentment_n she_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n charity_n with_o these_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v be_v charge_v nor_o with_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o not_o true_o and_o just_o i_o be_o sure_a in_o her_o worship_n and_o aministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n she_o transgress_v not_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o her_o government_n she_o encroach_v not_o upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o other_o church_n to_o her_o creed_n she_o have_v add_v no_o novelty_n to_o her_o communion_n she_o have_v annex_v no_o unlawful_a condition_n she_o do_v not_o unchurch_n those_o part_n of_o christendom_n that_o hold_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n no_o not_o that_o church_n itself_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v add_v thereunto_o so_o many_o enormous_a innovation_n she_o have_v not_o embroil_v the_o world_n nor_o waste_a country_n with_o violence_n upon_o such_o account_n as_o these_o she_o have_v the_o mark_n of_o christian_a unity_n incomparable_o more_o than_o the_o other_o church_n from_o such_o distinct_a notion_n of_o unity_n as_o i_o have_v lay_v down_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o idle_a than_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o church_n by_o that_o mark_n of_o unity_n which_o the_o cardinal_n lay_v down_o which_o come_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o man_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n that_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o they_o etc._n etc._n since_o it_o be_v not_o
mere_o unity_n that_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o unity_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n nor_o be_v unity_n the_o mark_n of_o a_o pure_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v upon_o term_n of_o obedience_n to_o god_n of_o charity_n to_o one_o another_o of_o keep_v the_o faith_n unmix_v with_o error_n and_o innovation_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n free_a from_o material_a defect_n and_o forbid_a practice_n from_o hence_o also_o the_o folly_n of_o that_o conceit_n may_v be_v easy_o discern_v that_o in_o this_o divide_a state_n of_o christendom_n there_o must_v be_v one_o church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n exclusive_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v not_o in_o communion_n with_o she_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o because_o there_o be_v not_o that_o unity_n among_o christian_n which_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v therefore_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o and_o because_o they_o be_v not_o unite_v in_o one_o communion_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o unite_v in_o one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n that_o fond_a principle_n now_o mention_v be_v advance_v by_o the_o romanist_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o this_o inference_n that_o because_o we_o grant_v the_o church_n to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o withal_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n therefore_o we_o be_v divide_v from_o they_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n ourselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v that_o one_o faith_n in_o which_o all_o that_o be_v unite_v belong_v to_o the_o church_n therefore_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n ourselves_o who_o have_v the_o unity_n of_o that_o faith_n too_o and_o moreover_o the_o unity_n of_o observe_v all_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o catholic_n term_n of_o communion_n etc._n etc._n which_o they_o have_v not_o if_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n give_v just_a cause_n of_o offence_n or_o if_o another_o take_v offence_n where_o none_o be_v give_v this_o be_v indeed_o contrary_a to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o not_o utter_o inconsistent_a with_o their_o be_v member_n of_o it_o and_o if_o st._n paul_n be_v in_o the_o right_a when_o he_o say_v if_o the_o foot_n shall_v say_v because_o i_o be_o not_o the_o head_n i_o be_o not_o of_o the_o body_n be_v it_o therefore_o not_o of_o the_o body_n it_o will_v be_v also_o true_a that_o though_o the_o foot_n shall_v say_v to_o the_o hand_n thou_o be_v not_o of_o the_o body_n because_o thou_o be_v not_o the_o foot_n the_o hand_n will_v be_v of_o the_o body_n for_o all_o that_o as_o for_o the_o unity_n of_o communion_n which_o they_o boast_v so_o much_o of_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o communion_n among_o themselves_o but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_n unity_n of_o communion_n because_o the_o term_n of_o it_o be_v many_o of_o they_o unjust_a and_o unlawful_a whereas_o we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v as_o much_o unity_n of_o communion_n among_o ourselves_o as_o they_o have_v this_o also_o to_o say_v as_o we_o have_v abundant_o show_v that_o the_o term_n of_o our_o communion_n be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o just_a and_o lawful_a and_o therefore_o we_o be_v a_o catholic_n unity_n if_o there_o be_v some_o protestant_n that_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o we_o it_o be_v no_o more_o our_o fault_n than_o that_o the_o papist_n refuse_v to_o do_v so_o and_o though_o in_o point_n of_o interest_n this_o tend_v to_o weaken_v yet_o in_o controversy_n it_o can_v prejudice_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o reformation_n that_o part_n of_o the_o west_n that_o have_v leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v labour_v under_o discord_n that_o affect_v their_o very_a communion_n while_o she_o herself_o do_v not_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o cause_n against_o she_o they_o may_v be_v all_o in_o the_o right_n where_o truth_n be_v maintain_v against_o a_o corrupt_a church_n there_o may_v yet_o be_v disobedience_n to_o authority_n overvalue_v question_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n a_o great_a stress_n lay_v upon_o opinion_n and_o practice_n than_o the_o cause_n will_v bear_v and_o this_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o break_v christian_a communion_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n gross_a error_n may_v be_v maintain_v and_o with_o one_o consent_n impose_v upon_o the_o world_n by_o the_o other_o church_n and_o all_o the_o while_n the_o difference_n how_o weighty_a soever_o that_o happen_v by_o the_o bye_n may_v be_v so_o overrule_v by_o force_n and_o power_n and_o the_o sensible_a interest_n of_o this_o world_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o affect_v their_o communion_n with_o one_o another_o but_o for_o the_o reason_n already_o lay_v down_o it_o be_v a_o fond_a thing_n to_o choose_v a_o church_n by_o the_o mark_n of_o such_o unity_n in_o short_a if_o we_o will_v in_o all_o respect_n keep_v within_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n this_o must_v be_v do_v by_o profess_v true_a doctrine_n by_o lead_v good_a life_n by_o a_o charitable_a spirit_n and_o behaviour_n towards_o all_o christian_n by_o frequent_v prayer_n and_o sacrament_n and_o by_o submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o lawful_a guide_n in_o all_o thing_n of_o indifference_n and_o expedience_n and_o then_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o whatever_o other_o do_v we_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o though_o the_o church_n after_o all_o be_v not_o that_o one_o body_n in_o all_o respect_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o which_o it_o will_v be_v if_o all_o man_n do_v their_o duty_n yet_o that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v such_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o as_o all_o other_o ought_v to_o be_v likewise_o now_o all_o this_o unity_n we_o may_v keep_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o we_o can_v keep_v it_o all_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o term_n thereof_o now_o stand_v but_o if_o this_o unity_n be_v not_o enough_o when_o once_o the_o romanist_n can_v prove_v that_o union_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o union_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o all_o that_o she_o believe_v and_o teach_v be_v also_o necessary_a to_o our_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o even_o to_o our_o maintain_v that_o unity_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v among_o all_o christian_n we_o will_v also_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o believe_v as_o the_o roman_a church_n believe_v but_o not_o till_o then_o the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o eight_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n octava_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la l._n four_o c._n 11._o imprimatur_fw-la june_n 4._o 1687._o hen._n maurice_n see_v the_o new_a covenant_n be_v the_o charter_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v found_v and_o all_o the_o blessing_n which_o this_o covenant_n promise_n be_v appropriate_v to_o that_o sacred_a society_n to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o it_o be_v doubtless_o a_o matter_n of_o vast_a importance_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v but_o that_o the_o bless_a jesus_n the_o most_o concern_v and_o careful_a friend_n of_o soul_n that_o ever_o be_v have_v be_v sufficient_o mindful_a to_o leave_v such_o plain_a and_o easy_a direction_n behind_o he_o how_o we_o may_v find_v his_o church_n and_o satisfy_v ourselves_o whether_o we_o be_v in_o fellowship_n with_o it_o or_o no_o as_o that_o neither_o the_o learned_a nor_o unlearned_a may_v be_v leave_v in_o the_o dark_a for_o resolution_n in_o such_o a_o momentous_a enquiry_n but_o how_o much_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v it_o her_o business_n to_o snarl_v and_o perplex_v several_a point_n of_o religion_n which_o our_o saviour_n leave_v plain_a and_o obvious_a enough_o to_o all_o capacity_n be_v too_o notorious_a and_o in_o nothing_o more_o than_o in_o this_o how_o to_o discover_v and_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n in_o order_n to_o which_o her_o most_o learned_a doctor_n and_o particular_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n have_v give_v we_o certain_a note_n by_o which_o as_o they_o pretend_v the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v distinguish_v by_o honest_a and_o diligent_a inquiry_n from_o all_o false_a church_n whatsoever_o but_o how_o far_o these_o note_n be_v from_o perform_v what_o be_v promise_v for_o they_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v upon_o a_o very_a fair_a examination_n of_o the_o seven_o first_o of_o of_o they_o i_o proceed_v therefore_o to_o the_o eight_o viz._n sanctity_n of_o
true_a catholic_n church_n be_v only_o the_o whole_a of_o all_o those_o simuular_a part_n or_o all_o true_a church_n together_o whatsoever_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v beside_o its_o be_v the_o whole_a all_o the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v of_o which_o it_o do_v consist_v and_o consequent_o if_o that_o be_v unerring_a these_o must_v be_v so_o also_o for_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o whole_a which_o consist_v of_o all_o the_o part_n shall_v be_v unerring_a unless_o all_o the_o part_n be_v unerring_a if_o therefore_o not_o to_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n all_o true_a church_n must_v necessary_o partake_v of_o it_o and_o consequent_o all_o those_o must_v be_v false_a church_n which_o profess_v any_o error_n than_o which_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o proposition_n in_o religion_n more_o notorious_o false_a it_o be_v true_a whatsoever_o church_n err_v in_o any_o fundamental_a article_n of_o religion_n do_v thereby_o cease_v from_o be_v a_o true_a church_n because_o those_o article_n be_v the_o very_a foundation_n upon_o which_o every_o true_a church_n stand_v and_o therefore_o when_o any_o church_n remove_v they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o it_o must_v necessary_o sink_v from_o the_o very_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n into_o a_o false_a and_o heretical_a communion_n but_o there_o be_v many_o error_n which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o touch_n or_o in_o the_o least_o affect_v the_o fundamental_o of_o religion_n and_o these_o a_o true_a church_n may_v possible_o profess_v and_o yet_o maintain_v her_o foundation_n firm_a and_o unshaken_a and_o so_o long_o as_o a_o church_n profess_v all_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v so_o far_o a_o true_a church_n though_o together_o with_o that_o it_o shall_v profess_v contrary_a to_o some_o other_o truth_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o how_o can_v its_o profess_v any_o error_n which_o do_v not_o contradict_v any_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n make_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o how_o can_v that_o be_v a_o false_a church_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o its_o profession_n which_o profess_v all_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o sound_n and_o constitute_v a_o true_a church_n if_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o error_n in_o religion_n be_v sufficient_a to_o destroy_v the_o verity_n of_o a_o church_n than_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o truth_n must_v be_v necessary_a to_o find_v it_o because_o every_o true_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o error_n can_v destroy_v it_o but_o what_o take_v away_o the_o truth_n which_o find_v and_o therefore_o unless_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o truth_n it_o can_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o profession_n of_o every_o error_n and_o consequent_o none_o can_v be_v true_a church_n but_o such_o as_o profess_v every_o true_a proposition_n in_o religion_n which_o be_v admit_v the_o profession_n of_o every_o true_a church_n must_v contain_v almost_o as_o many_o article_n as_o itself_o do_v contain_v communicant_n and_o indeed_o if_o none_o can_v be_v true_a church_n but_o such_o as_o profess_v no_o error_n no_o two_o church_n whatsoever_o can_v differ_v in_o any_o opinion_n though_o never_o so_o inconsiderable_a but_o one_o of_o the_o two_o must_v be_v a_o false_a church_n because_o wherever_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o opinion_n there_o must_v be_v a_o error_n on_o one_o side_n or_o other_o as_o for_o instance_n there_o be_v a_o very_a early_a difference_n in_o opinion_n between_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n in_o which_o if_o either_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n to_o be_v sure_o the_o other_o must_v be_v erroneous_a and_o if_o neither_o both_o do_v then_o the_o err_a church_n continue_v a_o true_a church_n or_o no_o notwithstanding_o its_o error_n if_o it_o do_v than_o a_o true_a church_n may_v err_v in_o its_o profession_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o true_a church_n still_o if_o it_o do_v not_o than_o both_o be_v false_a church_n because_o though_o each_o believe_v that_o the_o other_o err_v yet_o for_o a_o great_a while_o they_o mutual_o own_v each_o other_o for_o true_a church_n in_o which_o if_o every_o error_n destroy_v the_o verity_n of_o a_o church_n they_o both_o of_o they_o err_v and_o thereupon_o both_o cease_v to_o be_v true_a church_n and_o if_o we_o inquire_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o now_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o several_a instance_n it_o profess_v now_o quite_o contrary_a to_o what_o it_o profess_v heretofore_o vid._n note_v 3d_o p._n 65._o either_o therefore_o the_o profession_n of_o some_o error_n be_v consistent_a with_o the_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v either_o have_v be_v a_o false_a church_n heretofore_o or_o be_v a_o false_a church_n now_o and_o see_v the_o roman_a church_n now_o consist_v of_o several_a church_n some_o of_o which_o profess_v contrary_a to_o one_o another_o as_o particular_o in_o that_o celebrate_a question_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v superior_a to_o a_o general_n council_n or_o a_o general_n council_n to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o if_o either_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n there_o must_v be_v a_o erroneous_a profession_n on_o one_o side_n or_o other_o and_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n err_v in_o any_o of_o its_o part_n how_o can_v it_o be_v unerring_a in_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v nothing_o but_o all_o the_o part_n together_o for_o if_o she_o allow_v any_o church_n to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o profess_v any_o error_n she_o err_v herself_o suppose_v a_o unerring_a profession_n to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o be_v herself_o a_o false_a church_n if_o she_o do_v not_o then_o in_o receive_v church_n which_o differ_v in_o their_o profession_n she_o receive_v into_o her_o communion_n some_o that_o be_v no_o true_a church_n which_o i_o doubt_v will_v go_v as_o far_o towards_o the_o unchurch_a she_o as_o the_o profession_n of_o most_o error_n whatsoever_o in_o short_a therefore_o if_o not_o to_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n in_o any_o matter_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n all_o true_a church_n must_v necessary_o partake_v of_o it_o and_o consequent_o none_o can_v be_v true_a church_n which_o in_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o profess_v erroneous_o which_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v be_v utter_o false_a and_o which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a will_v perhaps_o as_o much_o damnify_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o sober_a and_o honest_a enquirer_n as_o any_o one_o church_n now_o extant_a in_o the_o world._n 2._o second_o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o that_o kind_n of_o thing_n of_o which_o it_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o thing_n of_o another_o kind_n otherwise_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o it_o shall_v true_o distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o but_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n be_v not_o peculiar_a to_o true_a church_n for_o see_v there_o may_v be_v a_o schism_n without_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n or_o heresy_n we_o must_v either_o allow_v schismatical_a society_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v true_a church_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v sure_o will_v never_o admit_v or_o that_o it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n peculiar_a to_o true_a church_n not_o to_o err_v in_o their_o faith._n that_o which_o may_v be_v common_a to_o schismatical_a communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n can_v be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o true_a church_n suppose_v schismatical_a communion_n not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o the_o true_a part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o own_v that_o there_o have_v be_v schism_n which_o do_v not_o err_v in_o their_o faith_n and_o yet_o be_v without_o the_o true_a church_n for_o so_o in_o his_o forecited_a cap._n 2._o there_o may_v be_v doctrine_n pure_a say_v he_o from_o all_o error_n in_o a_o false_a church_n for_o so_o pure_a schismatic_n as_o heretofore_o the_o luciferian_o and_o donatist_n have_v in_o the_o begin_n very_o sound_a doctrine_n among_o they_o and_o yet_o be_v without_o the_o true_a church_n where_o by_o the_o way_n it_o be_v evident_a the_o good_a man_n have_v quite_o forget_v that_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v hereafter_o to_o be_v one_o of_o his_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o if_o as_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n the_o note_n of_o
the_o true_a church_n be_v such_o as_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o it_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o his_o memory_n fail_v he_o either_o when_o he_o make_v sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v one_o of_o these_o note_n or_o when_o he_o allow_v this_o note_n to_o be_v common_a to_o false_a church_n with_o the_o true_a see_v therefore_o there_o have_v be_v community_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n which_o have_v not_o err_v in_o their_o faith_n and_o yet_o be_v neither_o the_o true_a church_n nor_o any_o true_a part_n of_o it_o and_o see_v what_o have_v be_v may_v be_v again_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o any_o honest_a enquirer_n after_o the_o true_a church_n to_o find_v any_o one_o church_n in_o the_o world_n to_o which_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a the_o catholic_n do_v not_o err_v in_o their_o faith_n the_o donatist_n and_o luciferian_o do_v not_o err_v in_o they_o how_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o discover_v by_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v in_o faith_n which_o of_o the_o three_o be_v the_o true_a church_n see_v that_o that_o can_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v not_o peculiar_a to_o it_o and_o that_o not_o err_v in_o faith_n be_v common_a to_o they_o both_o 3._o three_o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v for_o how_o can_v we_o know_v a_o thing_n by_o that_o which_o be_v as_o unknown_a to_o we_o as_o the_o thing_n itself_o if_o therefore_o not_o to_o err_v in_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o truth_n of_o every_o article_n comprise_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v more_o know_v than_o that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o consider_v how_o very_o large_a and_o extensive_a the_o public_a profession_n of_o church_n now_o be_v can_v be_v suppose_v without_o make_v the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o dark_a and_o obscure_a thing_n in_o the_o world._n for_o beside_o that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o his_o church_n it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n only_o can_v full_o instruct_v a_o man_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o those_o point_n of_o which_o the_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a church_n consist_v and_o therefore_o a_o man_n must_v have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n and_o be_v instruct_v by_o it_o before_o he_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o those_o point_n be_v all_o true_a of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o beside_o which_o i_o say_v it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v sundry_a doctrine_n now_o profess_v by_o most_o church_n of_o which_o ordinary_a capacity_n can_v make_v no_o certain_a judgement_n i_o confess_v if_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o the_o church_n now_o in_o be_v be_v confine_v to_o the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o a_o ordinary_a enquirer_n to_o satisfy_v himself_o concern_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o because_o whatsoever_o be_v fundamental_a be_v so_o plain_o reveal_v that_o probity_n of_o mind_n together_o with_o sound_a intellectual_n be_v the_o only_a accomplishment_n that_o be_v requisite_a to_o man_n attainment_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o but_o see_v the_o generality_n of_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o church_n do_v together_o with_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v fundamental_a comprehend_v such_o as_o be_v not_o yea_o and_o sometime_o such_o as_o be_v very_o remote_a from_o fundamental_o and_o see_v many_o of_o these_o be_v not_o so_o plain_o reveal_v but_o that_o pro_fw-la and_o con_v they_o be_v involve_v with_o such_o difficulty_n as_o have_v perplex_v even_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a enquirer_n to_o satisfy_v one_o self_n full_o that_o such_o profession_n as_o these_o be_v in_o all_o point_v true_a without_o the_o least_o intermixture_n of_o error_n require_v great_a sagacity_n as_o well_o as_o probity_n of_o mind_n for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o church_n now_o extant_a in_o the_o world_n but_o what_o profess_v some_o doctrine_n which_o in_o some_o other_o church_n be_v hot_o controvert_v and_o oppose_v and_o see_v there_o be_v sundry_a church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o in_o sundry_a point_n profess_v contrary_a to_o one_o another_o and_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o two_o church_n which_o in_o all_o point_n be_v agree_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o must_v in_o one_o point_n or_o other_o be_v erroneous_a and_o see_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v in_o several_a article_n differ_v from_o all_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n either_o she_o by_o this_o note_n must_v be_v a_o false_a church_n or_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o herself_o now_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o such_o a_o vast_a multiplicity_n of_o profession_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o ordinary_a enquirer_n to_o conclude_v with_o any_o certainty_n which_o of_o they_o be_v true_a and_o which_o false_a especial_o consider_v that_o as_o to_o some_o of_o the_o point_n in_o which_o they_o differ_v there_o be_v such_o fair_a probability_n pro_fw-la and_o con_v as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o suspend_v any_o modest_a judgement_n from_o determine_v itself_o one_o way_n or_o other_o and_o that_o other_o of_o they_o depend_v upon_o such_o scholastical_a nicety_n and_o be_v defend_v and_o oppose_v by_o such_o subtle_a and_o metaphysical_a reason_n such_o critical_a sense_n of_o text_n and_o ambiguous_a account_n of_o ecclesiastical_a antiquity_n as_o that_o scarce_o one_o man_n in_o a_o thousand_o be_v capable_a of_o make_v any_o certain_a judgement_n concern_v they_o if_o therefore_o before_o i_o can_v conclude_v that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n it_o must_v be_v more_o know_v and_o evident_a to_o i_o that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v in_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o than_o that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n doubtless_o to_o determine_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o obscure_a and_o difficult_a point_n in_o the_o world_n and_o i_o must_v be_v a_o very_a learned_a and_o judicious_a divine_a before_o i_o can_v modest_o pretend_v to_o have_v find_v it_o to_o what_o a_o miserable_a uncertainty_n then_o be_v mankind_n abandon_v when_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o their_o soul_n be_v worth_a to_o be_v in_o the_o true_a church_n and_o yet_o be_v leave_v to_o seek_v it_o by_o such_o a_o intricate_a note_n as_o this_o whereby_o scarce_o one_o man_n in_o a_o thousand_o be_v capable_a of_o find_v it_o 4._o and_o last_o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v inseparable_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v notify_v or_o make_v know_v a_o thing_n without_o which_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v what_o it_o be_v and_o if_o that_o which_o be_v the_o note_n of_o it_o may_v be_v separate_v from_o it_o it_o may_v be_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v though_o it_o have_v not_o that_o note_n if_o therefore_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n be_v not_o inseparable_a from_o the_o true_a church_n it_o may_v be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o it_o be_v not_o unerring_a in_o its_o profession_n wherefore_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o any_o church_n which_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n i_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v be_v inseparable_a to_o it_o but_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o this_o note_n be_v inseparable_a to_o any_o one_o church_n now_o extant_a i_o must_v be_v certain_a not_o only_o that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v now_o which_o as_o i_o have_v show_v above_o the_o generality_n of_o man_n can_v never_o be_v but_o also_o that_o it_o never_o have_v err_v nor_o ever_o will_v for_o as_o the_o cardinal_n have_v state_v the_o matter_n the_o thing_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o inquire_v be_v not_o which_o of_o the_o church_n now_o extant_a be_v true_a church_n or_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o which_o of_o they_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n if_o we_o be_v only_o to_o inquire_v which_o of_o they_o be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n all_o that_o we_o have_v to_o do_v be_v to_o satisfy_v ourselves_o which_o of_o they_o at_o present_a have_v the_o true_a note_n of_o a_o true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o as_o for_o particular_a church_n it_o be_v agree_v of_o all_o hand_n that_o they_o may_v be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n at_o one_o time_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v so_o at_o another_o so_o that_o as_o to_o particular_a church_n all_o that_o i_o need_v to_o inquire_v be_v only_o this_o whether_o at_o
present_a they_o be_v true_a church_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n whether_o they_o have_v at_o present_a the_o true_a note_n of_o true_a church_n but_o if_o i_o inquire_v as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v which_o of_o all_o the_o church_n now_o extant_a be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n before_o i_o can_v be_v full_o resolve_v i_o must_v not_o only_o be_v satisfy_v which_o of_o they_o be_v a_o true_a church_n at_o present_a but_o also_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v always_o continue_v so_o because_o though_o particular_a church_n may_v cease_v to_o be_v true_a church_n yet_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v it_o be_v found_v on_o that_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o therefore_o before_o i_o can_v be_v secure_a of_o any_o present_a church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n i_o must_v have_v some_o certainty_n not_o only_o that_o it_o have_v not_o err_v for_o the_o time_n past_a and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v at_o present_a but_o also_o that_o it_o will_v not_o err_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v for_o see_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n be_v always_o to_o continue_v if_o not_o to_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o it_o it_o must_v always_o be_v inseparable_a to_o it_o as_o well_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v as_o for_o the_o time_n past_a and_o present_a and_o therefore_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o church_n now_o extant_a that_o it_o be_v the_o only_a true_a catholic_n church_n by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n i_o ought_v to_o have_v very_o good_a assurance_n that_o it_o be_v inseparable_a to_o it_o not_o only_o for_o the_o time_n past_a and_o present_a but_o also_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o church_n which_o do_v not_o err_v now_o and_o do_v not_o err_v heretofore_o to_o err_v hereafter_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v deny_v because_o she_o allow_v no_o church_n now_o extant_a not_o to_o err_v but_o herself_o and_o yet_o own_v that_o there_o be_v many_o church_n now_o in_o be_v which_o once_o do_v not_o err_v and_o for_o several_a age_n continue_v untainted_a with_o error_n which_o yet_o have_v err_v since_o and_o therefore_o be_v now_o no_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o see_v that_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n it_o be_v no_o more_o impossible_a that_o a_o church_n which_o do_v not_o err_v now_o may_v have_v err_v heretofore_o and_o may_v err_v again_o hereafter_o than_o that_o a_o church_n which_o err_v now_o may_v not_o have_v err_v heretofore_o and_o may_v not_o err_v again_o hereafter_o i_o can_v conclude_v of_o any_o church_n that_o because_o it_o do_v not_o err_v at_o present_a therefore_o it_o never_o have_v err_v nor_o ever_o will._n suppose_v then_o that_o there_o be_v only_o two_o church_n in_o the_o world_n viz._n the_o roman_a and_o greek_a and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o present_a do_v not_o err_v and_o the_o greek_a do_v i_o can_v from_o hence_o no_o more_o conclude_v that_o not_o err_v be_v inseparable_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n than_o that_o err_a be_v inseparable_a to_o the_o greek_a the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o err_v now_o what_o then_o neither_o do_v the_o greek_a church_n err_v once_o why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o greek_a as_o well_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o once_o it_o do_v not_o err_v as_o the_o roman_a because_o now_o it_o do_v not_o see_v that_o not_o to_o have_v err_v heretofore_o and_o not_o to_o err_v now_o be_v only_o different_a respect_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n to_o different_a time_n and_o that_o the_o not_o err_v at_o one_o time_n do_v no_o more_o notify_v the_o true_a church_n than_o the_o not_o err_v at_o another_o it_o be_v not_o therefore_o sufficient_a to_o notify_v either_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o this_o note_v belong_v to_o it_o at_o such_o or_o such_o a_o time_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o time_n past_a or_o the_o time_n present_a see_v one_o time_n or_o other_o it_o have_v belong_v to_o they_o both_o but_o that_o of_o the_o two_o must_v be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o which_o it_o always_o belong_v and_o from_o which_o it_o be_v never_o separate_v but_o before_o i_o can_v pretend_v to_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o always_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o must_v have_v peruse_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n through_o all_o time_n pass_v to_o the_o present_a moment_n but_o alas_o those_o history_n as_o the_o learned_a of_o all_o side_n confess_v be_v some_o of_o they_o so_o short_a and_o imperfect_a other_o so_o partial_a and_o insincere_a and_o other_o so_o repugnant_a and_o contradictory_n to_o one_o another_o that_o suppose_v there_o be_v some_o church_n now_o in_o be_v that_o never_o err_v and_o that_o church_n be_v the_o roman_a it_o be_v next_o to_o impossible_a for_o i_o to_o be_v certain_a of_o it_o for_o even_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o only_a unerring_a church_n there_o be_v so_o many_o at_o least_o seem_a contradiction_n of_o one_o pope_n and_o general_n council_n to_o another_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n who_o be_v not_o prepossess_v with_o a_o strong_a opinion_n of_o her_o infallibility_n to_o pronounce_v with_o any_o degree_n of_o certainty_n that_o she_o never_o err_v and_o methinks_v it_o be_v something_o hard_o that_o i_o must_v seek_v the_o true_a church_n by_o such_o a_o note_n whereby_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o i_o to_o find_v it_o without_o spend_v a_o great_a part_n of_o my_o life_n in_o laborious_a researche_n of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n wherein_o after_o all_o in_o seek_v after_o a_o church_n that_o never_o err_v i_o doubt_v i_o shall_v but_o seek_v for_o a_o needle_n in_o a_o bottle_n of_o hay_n but_o suppose_v i_o be_v so_o far_o satisfy_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o to_o believe_v that_o it_o neither_o have_v err_v for_o the_o time_n past_a nor_o do_v err_v at_o the_o present_a before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o this_o note_n be_v inseparable_a to_o she_o i_o must_v have_v very_o good_a assurance_n that_o she_o will_v not_o err_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o by_o what_o argument_n can_v you_o assure_v i_o of_o that_o why_o have_v not_o our_o saviour_n promise_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o his_o true_a church_n and_o do_v not_o this_o necessary_o imply_v that_o his_o true_a church_n shall_v never_o err_v suppose_v it_o do_v you_o ought_v to_o consider_v that_o i_o be_o now_o inquire_v whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o and_o consequent_o whether_o this_o promise_v belong_v to_o she_o or_o no_o and_o therefore_o as_o yet_o neither_o this_o nor_o any_o other_o promise_n can_v be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n to_o i_o that_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v be_v inseparable_a to_o she_o for_o the_o future_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v several_a church_n now_o extant_a in_o the_o world_n which_o for_o several_a age_n do_v not_o err_v &_o yet_o now_o be_v erroneous_a and_o therefore_o suppose_v that_o she_o have_v not_o err_v for_o these_o 1600_o year_n past_a how_o can_v i_o thence_o conclude_v that_o she_o will_v not_o err_v hereafter_o when_o she_o herself_o own_v that_o there_o be_v church_n now_o in_o be_v which_o for_o 8_o or_o 900_o year_n do_v not_o err_v and_o yet_o have_v err_v ever_o since_o and_o what_o reason_n can_v you_o give_v why_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o impossible_a for_o a_o church_n to_o err_v after_o 1600_o year_n profession_n of_o the_o truth_n than_o after_o 900_o wherefore_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v be_v inseparable_a to_o any_o one_o church_n now_o in_o be_v i_o must_v have_v very_o good_a assurance_n not_o only_o that_o she_o do_v not_o err_v at_o present_a nor_o ever_o do_v but_o also_o that_o she_o never_o will._n but_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o she_o neither_o do_v err_v nor_o ever_o do_v i_o must_v be_v next_o to_o infallible_a myself_o and_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o she_o never_o will_v i_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o she_o be_v infallible_a because_o if_o her_o not_o err_v for_o the_o future_a be_v a_o contingency_n that_o may_v or_o may_v not_o be_v i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a whether_o it_o will_v be_v or_o no._n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a i_o shall_v be_v sure_a that_o she_o be_v a_o infallible_a church_n before_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o if_o infallibility_n be_v grant_v to_o any_o
church_n it_o be_v agree_v of_o all_o side_n that_o it_o be_v only_o to_o the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o i_o must_v be_v certain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o i_o can_v be_v ascertain_v which_o church_n be_v infallible_a see_v therefore_o that_o every_o true_a note_n be_v inseparable_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o i_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n which_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v i_o must_v have_v very_o good_a assurance_n not_o only_o that_o my_o church_n do_v not_o err_v at_o present_a but_o also_o that_o not_o to_o err_v be_v always_o inseparable_a to_o it_o both_o for_o the_o time_n past_a and_o the_o time_n to_o come_v see_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o one_o church_n now_o in_o be_v of_o which_o we_o can_v be_v rational_o assure_v as_o to_o this_o matter_n the_o necessary_a consequence_n be_v that_o by_o this_o note_n no_o man_n can_v certain_o discover_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o now_o have_v prove_v that_o according_a to_o the_o true_a property_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n this_o of_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n as_o bellarmin_n explain_v it_o be_v no_o true_a note_n for_o a_o honest_a enquirer_n to_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n by_o i_o proceed_v iii_o to_o inquire_v in_o what_o sense_n this_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o short_a if_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o understand_v profess_v all_o the_o necessary_a and_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o admit_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o christian_a worship_n and_o discipline_n this_o wherever_o it_o be_v be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o it_o as_o a_o true_a church_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v accidental_a to_o it_o be_v separable_a from_o it_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v separable_a from_o it_o it_o may_v have_v or_o not_o have_v and_o yet_o be_v a_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o that_o therefore_o which_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n may_v appertain_v to_o a_o false_a church_n as_o well_o as_o a_o true_a but_o to_o say_v that_o that_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o a_o true_a church_n be_v a_o downright_a contradiction_n if_o therefore_o we_o will_v have_v such_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o we_o may_v certain_o depend_v upon_o we_o must_v fetch_v they_o from_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o we_o must_v first_o state_n what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a what_o be_v the_o true_a note_n of_o it_o now_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v necessary_a to_o constitute_v a_o true_a christian_a church_n may_v be_v easy_o collect_v by_o consider_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o true_a christian_a for_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o society_n of_o true_a christian_n and_o see_v that_o christianity_n consist_v of_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o law_n of_o worship_n and_o discipline_n he_o only_o be_v a_o true_a christian_n that_o own_v and_o receive_v christianity_n in_o all_o these_o part_n of_o it_o that_o be_v who_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o true_a christian_a faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n and_o consequent_o that_o must_v be_v a_o true_a christian_a church_n or_o society_n of_o true_a christian_n which_o profess_v all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o receive_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o christian_a worship_n and_o discipline_n wherever_o therefore_o i_o find_v a_o religious_a society_n of_o man_n profess_v all_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n worship_v the_o one_o god_n through_o the_o one_o mediator_n communicate_v in_o the_o true_a christian_a sacrament_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o true_a christian_a discipline_n due_o administer_v by_o true_a christian_a pastor_n and_o governor_n there_o i_o be_o certain_a i_o have_v find_v a_o true_a church_n if_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o that_o constitute_v a_o true_a church_n wherefore_o before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n we_o must_v be_v right_o imform_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v and_o before_o we_o can_v state_n what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v we_o must_v learn_v what_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n and_o discipline_n be_v because_o these_o be_v the_o essential_a ingredient_n of_o which_o a_o true_a church_n be_v compose_v and_o when_o we_o have_v learn_v what_o these_o be_v by_o they_o we_o may_v certain_o discover_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o no._n if_o therefore_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o understand_v the_o public_a profession_n and_o admission_n of_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o christian_a faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o the_o only_a certain_a note_n of_o it_o because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o it_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o essential_a to_o it_o but_o what_o this_o note_n comprehend_v wherever_o this_o be_v there_o be_v the_o entire_a essence_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n upon_o earth_n that_o have_v it_o that_o will_v be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o if_o there_o be_v ten_o thousand_o church_n agree_v in_o it_o there_o will_v be_v ten_o thousand_o true_a church_n so_o that_o whereas_o all_o other_o note_n be_v separable_a from_o a_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o may_v direct_v we_o to_o a_o false_a church_n instead_o of_o a_o true_a this_o be_v no_o more_o separable_a from_o it_o than_o a_o true_a man_n be_v from_o the_o human_a nature_n and_o if_o i_o have_v find_v a_o church_n that_o have_v in_o it_o all_o the_o other_o note_n of_o bellarmin_n except_v this_o i_o shall_v still_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o a_o true_a church_n as_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o i_o have_v find_v a_o church_n that_o want_v all_o the_o rest_n but_o this_o i_o shall_v nevertheless_o sit_v down_o full_o satisfy_v of_o its_o truth_n and_o seek_v no_o further_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v a_o brief_a account_n in_o what_o sense_n sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o by_o this_o our_o church_n be_v willing_a to_o be_v try_v by_o any_o honest_a and_o ingenuous_a enquirer_n who_o business_n it_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o truth_n and_o not_o for_o gain_n and_o preferment_n and_o if_o upon_o examination_n he_o can_v find_v in_o it_o as_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o may_v if_o he_o examine_v fair_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o that_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o discipline_n which_o the_o scripture_n teach_v and_o the_o primitive_a age_n profess_v and_o embrace_v in_o god_n name_n let_v he_o seek_v far_o abroad_o but_o if_o after_o he_o have_v miss_v of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o shall_v happen_v to_o find_v it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n import_v he_o as_o much_o as_o his_o soul_n be_v worth_a to_o inquire_v into_o one_o point_n more_o viz._n whether_o he_o seek_v it_o by_o his_o reason_n or_o by_o his_o interest_n and_o now_o i_o proceed_v iu._n and_o last_o to_o show_v that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v by_o this_o note_n in_o which-soev_a of_o the_o two_o sense_n we_o understand_v it_o for_o if_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o mean_v with_o bellarmin_n a_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n without_o any_o the_o least_o intermixture_n of_o error_n before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a we_o have_v find_v they_o true_a church_n by_o it_o we_o must_v be_v very_o well_o assure_v concern_v the_o profession_n of_o that_o church_n which_o we_o take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o it_o be_v in_o all_o particular_n true_a without_o any_o the_o least_o ingredient_n of_o error_n or_o if_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o only_o mean_v the_o profession_n of_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o christian_a faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o it_o we_o must_v be_v very_o well_o assure_v not_o only_o that_o there_o be_v such_o essential_a principle_n and_o what_o they_o be_v but_o also_o that_o they_o be_v true_a for_o unless_o we_o certain_o know_v that_o there_o be_v such_o principle_n and_o what_o
they_o be_v we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a whether_o any_o one_o church_n in_o the_o world_n do_v profess_v they_o or_o no_o for_o how_o can_v we_o know_v whether_o or_o no_o a_o church_n profess_v we_o know_v not_o what_o and_o unless_o we_o certain_o know_v that_o these_o principle_n be_v true_a we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a whether_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o profess_v they_o for_o see_v it_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a principle_n of_o religion_n that_o make_v a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v whether_o any_o church_n be_v a_o true_a church_n till_o we_o know_v whether_o the_o principle_n it_o profess_v be_v true_a so_o that_o before_o a_o man_n can_v be_v secure_a that_o he_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n he_o must_v be_v certain_a either_o that_o every_o thing_n it_o profess_v be_v true_a or_o at_o least_o that_o the_o main_a and_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o its_o profession_n be_v true_a neither_o of_o which_o he_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o first_o she_o decry_v man_n private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o utter_o insufficient_a to_o make_v any_o certain_a distinction_n of_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n second_o she_o allow_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n without_o the_o true_a church_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n three_o she_o resolve_v all_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n four_o she_o authorise_v the_o true_a church_n to_o impose_v upon_o we_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o believe_v such_o thing_n as_o before_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v first_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decry_v man_n private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o utter_o insufficient_a to_o make_v any_o certain_a distinction_n of_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n see_v we_o be_v to_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n by_o note_n our_o certainty_n that_o we_o have_v find_v it_o must_v whole_o depend_v upon_o our_o certainty_n that_o we_o have_v find_v in_o it_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o though_o there_o be_v no_o one_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n of_o which_o we_o be_v more_o concern_v to_o be_v certain_a than_o that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n and_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o it_o because_o no_o less_o than_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n depend_v upon_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v only_o our_o own_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n that_o by_o apply_v the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n can_v ascertain_v we_o in_o this_o point_n for_o while_o we_o be_v in_o quest_n of_o the_o true_a church_n we_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o find_v it_o but_o by_o carry_v the_o note_n of_o it_o along_o with_o we_o and_o by_o examine_v and_o judge_v by_o our_o own_o private_a discretion_n which_o church_n these_o note_n do_v belong_v to_o either_o our_o private_a discretion_n be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o it_o be_v not_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v it_o must_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o in_o all_o other_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n because_o one_o of_o the_o note_n by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o a_o principal_a one_o too_o be_v sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n or_o a_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n at_o least_o in_o all_o necessary_a point_n but_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a which_o church_n this_o note_n belong_v to_o we_o must_v be_v thorough_o satisfy_v in_o our_o own_o private_a discretion_n what_o this_o unerring_a profession_n be_v which_o we_o can_v never_o be_v till_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o and_o when_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o this_o we_o be_v certain_a at_o least_o as_o to_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o true_a religion_n which_o must_v all_o be_v include_v in_o every_o unerring_a profession_n of_o it_o so_o that_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n we_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n and_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o this_o we_o must_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o those_o particular_a doctrine_n whereof_o its_o profession_n be_v compose_v and_o of_o this_o we_o have_v as_o yet_o no_o other_o way_n to_o be_v certain_a but_o only_o by_o our_o own_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n because_o till_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n its_o impossible_a we_o shall_v conduct_v ourselves_o by_o its_o authority_n and_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o true_a church_n authority_n we_o have_v nothing_o to_o conduct_v we_o but_o our_o own_o private_a discretion_n either_o this_o our_o private_a discretion_n therefore_o be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n whereof_o a_o unerring_a profession_n of_o religion_n be_v compose_v or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o it_o be_v it_o must_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o as_o to_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n if_o it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n affirm_v it_o be_v not_o it_o be_v impossible_a we_o shall_v ever_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n again_o either_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v allow_v that_o certainty_n in_o all_o at_o least_o in_o all_o necessary_a point_v of_o religion_n be_v attainable_a by_o the_o free_a and_o honest_a use_n of_o our_o own_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n which_o as_o i_o shall_v show_v by_o and_o by_o she_o can_v never_o allow_v without_o undermine_v she_o own_o foundation_n or_o she_o must_v leave_v man_n hover_v in_o eternal_a uncertainty_n as_o to_o one_o of_o the_o most_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n viz._n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n second_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n without_o the_o true_a church_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n see_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o natural_a but_o entire_o found_v upon_o divine_a institution_n this_o question_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v resolve_v by_o principle_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o principle_n of_o revelation_n and_o therefore_o without_o some_o reveal_v rule_n which_o be_v every_o way_n sufficient_a to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a discretion_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o without_o such_o a_o rule_n we_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n to_o go_v by_o which_o in_o this_o enquiry_n be_v utter_o insufficient_a to_o direct_v we_o but_o while_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v no_o other_o reveal_v rule_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o our_o enquiry_n after_o it_o but_o only_o that_o of_o scripture_n for_o as_o for_o tradition_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o sole_a conservator_n of_o it_o and_o that_o though_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o divine_a revelation_n yet_o no_o man_n be_v oblige_v any_o far_a to_o believe_v it_o than_o the_o true_a church_n have_v define_v and_o declare_v it_o and_o see_v i_o can_v have_v ho_o certainty_n what_o be_v a_o true_a tradition_n till_o such_o time_n as_o i_o be_o get_v into_o the_o true_a church_n how_o can_v tradition_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o i_o while_o i_o be_o out_o of_o it_o or_o how_o can_v that_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o my_o faith_n whilst_o i_o be_o in_o quest_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o i_o have_v no_o other_o obligation_n to_o believe_v but_o only_o the_o true_a church_n authority_n whilst_o therefore_o i_o be_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o only_a rule_n i_o have_v to_o go_v by_o in_o my_o inquiry_n after_o it_o be_v scripture_n and_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tell_v i_o be_v insufficient_a both_o because_o it_o be_v not_o full_a enough_o and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o clear_a enough_o which_o if_o true_a i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a i_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n one_a she_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o full_a enough_o as_o not_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n but_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a unwritten_a tradition_n in_o the_o church_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o it_o by_o which_o its_o defect_n be_v supply_v and_o if_o so_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a i_o
shall_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n for_o since_o according_a to_o this_o note_n that_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o uner_o profess_v all_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n when_o i_o have_v find_v a_o church_n which_o profess_v all_o such_o necessary_a doctrine_n as_o be_v in_o scripture_n i_o can_v be_v secure_a that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n suppose_v there_o be_v other_o necessary_a doctrine_n out_o of_o scripture_n viz._n in_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n because_o then_o the_o profession_n of_o these_o will_v be_v altogether_o as_o necessary_a to_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n as_o the_o profession_n of_o those_o all_o that_o the_o scripture_n can_v satisfy_v i_o in_o be_v only_o this_o whether_o such_o a_o church_n profess_v all_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n in_o scripture_n but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o necessary_a doctrine_n out_o of_o scripture_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o profession_n of_o they_o be_v as_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o profession_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o therefore_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n i_o must_v be_v full_o satisfy_v that_o it_o profess_v both_o which_o i_o can_v never_o be_v unless_o i_o have_v some_o other_o rule_n to_o go_v by_o beside_o this_o of_o scripture_n 2_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n in_o respect_n of_o clearness_n the_o sense_n of_o it_o be_v so_o obscure_o express_v that_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a what_o it_o be_v without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o if_o true_a it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a for_o one_o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n ever_o to_o find_v it_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n for_o according_a to_o this_o note_n that_o only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n at_o least_o in_o any_o necessary_a point_n either_o as_o to_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o manner_n but_o before_o i_o can_v know_v whether_o any_o church_n do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n i_o must_v be_v certain_o inform_v what_o the_o true_a profession_n be_v or_o what_o be_v those_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o which_o this_o true_a profession_n consist_v as_o to_o which_o the_o scripture_n can_v never_o certain_o inform_v i_o if_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o clear_a for_o if_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a what_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o while_o i_o be_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o shall_v ever_o be_v certain_a of_o its_o sense_n as_o to_o all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o the_o true_a profession_n of_o religion_n contain_v so_o that_o according_a to_o this_o principle_n the_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o one_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o it_o be_v perfect_o useless_a to_o he_o in_o his_o enquiry_n after_o it_o for_o either_o it_o can_v certain_o direct_v he_o to_o the_o true_a church_n or_o it_o can_v if_o it_o can_v it_o must_v be_v sufficient_o clear_a to_o inform_v he_o of_o its_o own_o sense_n without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n concern_v all_o those_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n whereof_o the_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v compose_v and_o if_o so_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v erroneous_a if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v it_o serve_v unless_o it_o be_v to_o lead_v he_o into_o a_o endless_a maze_n of_o uncertainty_n wherein_o the_o further_o he_o wander_v the_o more_o he_o will_v lose_v himself_o so_o that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v have_v the_o misfortune_n to_o be_v bear_v and_o breed_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o a_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a communion_n and_o be_v inquire_v his_o way_n in_o by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n he_o have_v no_o other_o rule_n to_o instruct_v and_o inform_v he_o what_o this_o unerring_a profession_n be_v but_o only_o that_o of_o scripture_n which_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v insufficient_a for_o his_o purpose_n how_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a he_o shall_v ever_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n when_o the_o only_a rule_n he_o have_v whereby_o to_o inquire_v what_o that_o unerring_a profession_n be_v whereby_o he_o be_v to_o seek_v it_o be_v utter_o insufficient_a to_o resolve_v he_o three_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n resolve_v all_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o indeed_o this_o be_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o popery_n viz._n that_o the_o only_a ground_n of_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a true_a church_n teach_v and_o propose_v propose_v they_o till_o such_o time_n therefore_o as_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n and_o do_v believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o its_o teach_n we_o can_v never_o have_v any_o true_a certainty_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o yet_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n we_o must_v have_v very_o good_a certainty_n as_o to_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n that_o what_o we_o believe_v be_v true_a till_o such_o time_n as_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o can_v we_o ever_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n until_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o it_o teach_v and_o profess_v be_v true_a so_o that_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n after_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n and_o do_v believe_v upon_o its_o authority_n must_v depend_v upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n while_o we_o be_v seek_v it_o and_o do_v believe_v without_o its_o authority_n because_o before_o we_o can_v believe_v with_o any_o certainty_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n we_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n till_o we_o be_v first_o certain_a that_o its_o profession_n be_v true_a as_o to_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o it_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_a i_o will_v brief_o represent_v it_o in_o a_o short_a dialogue_n between_o a_o protestant_n and_o a_o papist_n protest_v you_o tell_v i_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a as_o to_z matter_n of_o faith_n unless_o i_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n pap._n i_o do_v so_o and_o upon_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o proposition_n all_o my_o religion_n be_v found_v protest_v but_o i_o beseech_v you_o may_v i_o be_v certain_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o i_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n though_o i_o be_o not_o certain_a whether_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o pap._n to_o what_o purpose_n do_v you_o ask_v this_o question_n protest_v because_o if_o i_o may_v then_o in_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o you_o say_v be_v a_o false_a church_n i_o shall_v be_v as_o certain_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o who_o believe_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o you_o say_v be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n pap._n why_o then_o i_o tell_v you_o you_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n unless_o you_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n upon_o who_o authority_n you_o believe_v believe_v they_o protest_v why_o so_o pap._n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o church_n mere_o that_o be_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n otherwise_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o church_n true_a or_o false_a will_v be_v equal_o a_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n and_o therefore_o you_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o church_n upon_o which_o you_o believe_v be_v a_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n unless_o you_o be_v first_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n protest_v i_o do_v allow_v your_o reason_n but_o then_o pray_v
a_o unerring_a profession_n but_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a one_o way_n or_o tother_o whether_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a whether_o her_o profession_n be_v true_a or_o false_a till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n there_o be_v some_o article_n in_o her_o profession_n of_o which_o as_o her_o own_o doctor_n confess_v i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v true_a and_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o one_o article_n in_o her_o profession_n be_v false_a and_o if_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a whether_o she_o err_v in_o her_o profession_n or_o no_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a whether_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o inquire_v whether_o or_o no_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n if_o suppose_v she_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n she_o have_v authority_n from_o god_n to_o oblige_v i_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v to_o day_n that_o which_o i_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v yesterday_o to_o what_o end_n do_v i_o inquire_v whether_o those_o thing_n which_o she_o command_v i_o to_o believe_v be_v true_a or_o false_a if_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v she_o may_v be_v i_o be_o sure_a what_o ever_o she_o command_v i_o to_o believe_v must_v be_v true_a and_o therefore_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o thing_n she_o command_v i_o to_o believe_v be_v false_a for_o how_o can_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o one_o thing_n she_o impose_v be_v false_a when_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n who_o can_v neither_o impose_v himself_o nor_o authorise_v any_o other_o to_o impose_v on_o i_o that_o which_o be_v false_a have_v authorize_v to_o impose_v it_o and_o if_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o thing_n she_o impose_v be_v false_a how_o can_v i_o ever_o be_v cartain_a by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n whether_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o for_o if_o any_o thing_n she_o profess_v or_o impose_v be_v false_a by_o this_o note_n she_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o whether_o any_o thing_n she_o profess_v be_v false_a or_o no_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a till_o i_o be_o first_o certain_a whether_o she_o be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n the_o end_n errata_fw-la in_o the_o seven_o note_n pag._n 137._o the_o first_o cum_fw-la capite_fw-la in_o the_o title_n be_v to_o be_v blot_v out_o p._n 147._o line_n 17._o for_o arian_n r._n asian_n p._n 148._o l._n 6._o f._n complaint_n r._n compliment_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o nine_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n nona_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la efficacia_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la bellarm._n l._n four_o c._n 12._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la june_n 8._o 1687._o jo._n batte_o by_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n must_v be_v mean_v either_o that_o power_n which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o particular_a man_n to_o dispose_v they_o to_o believe_v aright_o and_o to_o live_v well_o or_o else_o that_o success_n which_o it_o have_v in_o draw_v multitude_n outward_o to_o profess_v and_o embrace_v it_o the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v too_o inward_a a_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o know_v what_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v do_v in_o another_o heart_n but_o instead_o of_o that_o apt_a rather_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o what_o it_o have_v do_v in_o his_o own_o the_o second_o which_o must_v be_v that_o the_o cardinal_n mean_v can_v as_o little_a be_v a_o note_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o uncertainty_n and_o if_o we_o can_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o note_n we_o shall_v be_v less_o so_o of_o that_o which_o we_o be_v to_o find_v out_o by_o it_o if_o indeed_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o can_v or_o do_v move_v man_n to_o relinquish_v heathenism_n judaisme_n or_o turcism_n for_o our_o religion_n but_o the_o pure_a efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a good_a note_n of_o the_o excellence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o but_o according_a to_o the_o cardinal_n be_v own_o principle_n it_o can_v be_v no_o note_n that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o preach_v it_o since_o he_o will_v not_o allow_v the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o truth_n to_o signify_v any_o thing_n 2._o lib._n four_o 2._o and_o we_o shall_v have_v much_o less_o reason_n to_o rely_v on_o this_o note_n if_o we_o consider_v how_o many_o other_o thing_n there_o be_v beside_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o have_v and_o may_v convert_v whole_a nation_n to_o it_o let_v we_o therefore_o at_o present_a grant_n in_o general_a the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v true_a that_o such_o conversion_n as_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v of_o be_v make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o they_o be_v make_v pure_o by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o that_o no_o other_o mean_n such_o as_o force_v etc._n etc._n be_v use_v be_v it_o enough_o that_o he_o tell_v we_o so_o the_o bishop_n of_o meaux_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o late_a great_a conversion_n in_o france_n not_o one_o of_o the_o person_n convert_v suffer_v violence_n either_o in_o his_o person_n or_o good_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o suffer_v torment_n 4._o pastoral_n letter_n p._n 3_o 4._o that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v they_o mention_v and_o that_o he_o hear_v other_o bishop_n affirm_v the_o same_o now_o if_o those_o reverend_a prelate_n be_v out_o as_o most_o people_n think_v they_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o which_o they_o may_v be_v eye-witness_n why_o may_v not_o the_o learned_a cardinal_n be_v so_o too_o in_o his_o relation_n of_o conversion_n make_v so_o many_o hundred_o year_n since_o if_o he_o be_v out_o his_o note_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o if_o it_o can_v be_v make_v plain_o to_o appear_v to_o we_o that_o he_o be_v not_o out_o his_o note_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o those_o history_n which_o he_o produce_v want_v that_o certainty_n which_o shall_v give_v we_o satisfaction_n historian_n who_o write_v in_o those_o obscure_a time_n and_o be_v perhaps_o themselves_o converter_n be_v most_o of_o they_o monk_n may_v vainglorious_o ascribe_v much_o to_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o the_o centuriator_n themselves_o who_o he_o so_o often_o quote_v may_v not_o be_v very_o curious_a to_o search_v or_o accurate_a to_o relate_v the_o chief_a motive_n of_o their_o conversion_n because_o they_o write_v before_o the_o cardinal_n have_v make_v efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o little_o dream_v what_o odd_a use_n some_o man_n will_v make_v of_o their_o history_n but_o notwithstanding_o these_o neglect_v and_o disadvantage_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o if_o we_o look_v back_o into_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n nay_o even_o into_o the_o centuriator_n themselves_o we_o shall_v find_v some_o other_o thing_n beside_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n concur_v to_o the_o conversion_n which_o be_v then_o wrought_v a_o instance_n whereof_o to_o pass_v by_o at_o present_a the_o particular_a examination_n of_o those_o mention_v by_o the_o cardinal_n we_o have_v in_o those_o converon_n wrought_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a to_o who_o victorious_a arm_n they_o be_v more_o to_o be_v ascribe_v than_o to_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o for_o not_o to_o mention_v that_o the_o clergy_n be_v not_o then_o in_o any_o great_a capacity_n of_o do_v much_o by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o doctrine_n the_o bishop_n be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v command_v to_o understand_v the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o can_v hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o make_v some_o few_o exhortation_n to_o the_o people_n but_o instead_o of_o that_o turn_v soldier_n to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v somewhat_o towards_o the_o propagate_a their_o religion_n such_o be_v the_o zeal_n of_o that_o prince_n rather_o to_o defend_v and_o increase_v the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n great_a mezeray_fw-fr in_o the_o life_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a than_o to_o enlarge_v his_o own_o empire_n that_o peace_n can_v never_o be_v
obtain_v of_o he_o upon_o other_o their_o term_n than_o that_o those_o who_o be_v conquer_v by_o he_o have_v leave_v their_o idol-worship_n shall_v embrace_v the_o true_a metrop_n krantzius_n praef._n ad_fw-la metrop_n sincere_a and_o eternal_a religion_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o engage_v they_o to_o continue_v firm_a to_o it_o he_o sometime_o take_v hostage_n of_o they_o and_o find_v they_o begin_v to_o apostatise_v which_o they_o as_o often_o do_v as_o they_o think_v themselves_o able_a to_o make_v head_n against_o their_o conqueror_n he_o be_v force_v to_o set_v up_o a_o kind_n of_o inquisition_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o awe_n which_o mezeray_n tell_v we_o last_v in_o westphalia_n till_o the_o 15_o century_n now_o when_o the_o sword_n of_o victorious_a prince_n as_o it_o happen_v in_o this_o case_n have_v make_v way_n for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o the_o receive_n of_o it_o be_v often_o make_v one_o of_o the_o term_n they_o who_o be_v conquer_v must_v necessary_o submit_v to_o the_o monk_n have_v very_o easy_a work_n whatever_o doctrine_n they_o have_v preach_v may_v have_v be_v efficacious_a under_o such_o circumstance_n so_o that_o when_o there_o be_v with_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n a_o concurrence_n of_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o have_v so_o strong_a a_o influence_n upon_o humane_a nature_n it_o be_v hard_a nay_o impossible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v which_o of_o they_o do_v the_o work_n when_o different_a medicine_n proper_a for_o the_o same_o distemper_n be_v administer_v at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o say_v which_o of_o they_o work_v the_o cure._n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o wonderful_a efficacy_n in_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n but_o we_o can_v never_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o nation_n be_v effect_v by_o that_o when_o hope_n and_o fear_n and_o outward_a force_n and_o necessity_n be_v in_o conjunction_n with_o it_o all_o which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o detract_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o conversion_n it_o make_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n that_o it_o set_v i●_n it_o a_o better_a light_n and_o make_v it_o shine_v the_o bright_a man_n be_v convert_v then_o not_o to_o a_o conquer_a but_o persecute_v church_n the_o secular_a power_n be_v against_o they_o that_o preach_v this_o holy_a doctrine_n much_o may_v be_v lose_v and_o nothing_o in_o this_o world_n get_v by_o it_o there_o be_v no_o reward_n to_o encourage_v man_n to_o receive_v it_o but_o a_o thousand_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n to_o deter_v they_o from_o it_o and_o then_o indeed_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v in_o its_o great_a lustre_n it_o wrought_v all_o alone_a and_o have_v nothing_o to_o put_v in_o with_o it_o for_o a_o share_n in_o the_o conquest_n it_o make_v the_o simplicity_n of_o its_o preacher_n clear_v they_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o fraud_n the_o little_a or_o no_o interest_n they_o have_v in_o the_o government_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o they_o can_v not_o use_v force_n and_o every_o thing_n concur_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o be_v pure_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o which_o they_o prevail_v but_o to_o proceed_v a_o little_a more_o particular_o to_o answer_v what_o the_o cardinal_n have_v discourse_v upon_o this_o subject_a first_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o show_v in_o the_o general_n that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n second_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o such_o particular_n as_o do_v more_o particular_o affect_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o do_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o that_o church_n be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n three_o i_o shall_v show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o those_o argument_n with_o which_o the_o cardinal_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n first_o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v 1._o what_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n 2._o the_o nature_n of_o mankind_n 3._o matter_n of_o fact._n 1._o although_o our_o saviour_n sufficient_o understand_v how_o much_o his_o doctrine_n be_v likely_a to_o prevail_v in_o the_o world_n yet_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v this_o to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o his_o church_n that_o he_o give_v as_o plain_a intimation_n of_o the_o prevalency_n of_o error_n and_o do_v often_o bid_v we_o take_v care_n how_o we_o be_v impose_v upon_o on_o thereby_o take_v heed_n say_v he_o that_o no_o man_n deceive_v you_o for_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o my_o name_n 5._o mat._n 24.4_o 5._o say_v i_o be_o christ_n and_o deceive_v many_o for_o there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n 24._o verse_n 24._o and_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n insomuch_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect._n when_o he_o foretell_v so_o general_a a_o defection_n he_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v think_v the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n to_o have_v be_v the_o character_n of_o his_o true_a disciple_n he_o do_v indeed_o compare_v the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n which_o be_v the_o least_o of_o all_o seed_n hut_n when_o it_o be_v grow_v it_o be_v the_o great_a among_o herb_n unto_o leaven_n which_o leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n unto_o a_o net_n which_o gather_v of_o every_o kind_n all_o which_o comparison_n do_v intimate_v how_o much_o his_o church_n will_v spread_v far_o &_o near_o but_o not_o that_o such_o its_o diffusiveness_n be_v to_o be_v rely_v upon_o as_o a_o note_n whereby_o to_o find_v it_o for_o by_o that_o mark_v it_o can_v not_o then_o have_v be_v find_v when_o it_o be_v but_o a_o little_a flock_n beside_o that_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o compare_v likewise_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o a_o man_n which_o sow_v good_a seed_n in_o his_o field_n 26._o verse_n 24_o 25_o 26._o but_o while_o man_n sleep_v his_o enemy_n come_v and_o sow_v tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n and_o go_v his_o way_n but_o when_o the_o blade_n be_v spring_v up_o and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n than_o appear_v the_o tare_n also_o in_o which_o case_n if_o we_o be_v to_o judge_n by_o the_o growth_n and_o spread_a we_o may_v conclude_v the_o tare_n to_o have_v be_v the_o best_a seed_n and_o not_o sow_o by_o a_o enemy_n he_o compare_v likewise_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n to_o the_o servant_n of_o a_o certain_a king_n send_v out_o by_o he_o to_o call_v those_o that_o be_v bid_v to_o the_o wedding_n but_o to_o no_o purpose_n etc._n mat._n 22.2_o etc._n etc._n for_o they_o all_o make_v light_n of_o it_o intimate_v hereby_o how_o possible_a it_o be_v for_o those_o who_o be_v obstinate_a not_o to_o hearken_v to_o the_o most_o efficacious_a doctrine_n that_o can_v be_v preach_v the_o most_o passionate_a and_o earnest_a invitation_n which_o can_v be_v make_v they_o and_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o good_a seed_n some_o of_o which_o fall_v by_o the_o way-side_n some_o upon_o stony_a place_n some_o among_o thorn_n 4._o mat._n 13.3_o 4._o and_o other_o upon_o good_a ground_n he_o do_v plain_o set_v forth_o that_o let_v any_o doctrine_n be_v never_o so_o good_a the_o reception_n which_o it_o find_v in_o the_o world_n will_v be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o those_o disposition_n of_o mind_n which_o it_o happen_v to_o meet_v with_o and_o here_o also_o if_o the_o rule_n have_v be_v that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n which_o grow_v fast_o and_o out-top_n the_o other_o we_o must_v have_v give_v it_o for_o the_o thorn_n which_o grow_v up_o and_o choke_v the_o good_a seed_n which_o lead_v i_o to_o show_v 2._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o mankind_n how_o weak_a a_o proof_n of_o a_o true_a church_n the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n be_v which_o it_o teach_v for_o man_n mind_n be_v so_o uncertain_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o inconstancy_n of_o their_o circumstance_n which_o chief_o influence_n they_o that_o often_o truth_n be_v shut_v out_o where_o error_n find_v a_o easy_a admission_n humane_a nature_n be_v so_o weak_a a_o thing_n so_o apt_a to_o take_v impression_n first_o from_o this_o thing_n then_o from_o another_o that_o no_o great_a heed_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o its_o change_n no_o certain_a argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o they_o such_o indeed_o be_v the_o power_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v mankind_n free_v from_o their_o prejudices_fw-la against_o it_o be_v their_o mind_n no_o way_n bias_v by_o interest_n or_o passion_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n full_o instruct_v concern_v it_o there_o be_v
no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o it_o will_v general_o obtain_v but_o when_o man_n inclination_n and_o circumstance_n be_v so_o various_a nothing_o be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o the_o receive_n or_o reject_v truth_n be_v a_o thing_n too_o uncertain_a to_o be_v make_v a_o infallible_a note_n of_o it_o when_o it_o be_v argue_v on_o behalf_n of_o christianity_n that_o so_o many_o thousand_o be_v on_o the_o sudden_a convert_v to_o the_o faith_n the_o force_n of_o such_o a_o argument_n do_v not_o lie_v in_o the_o bare_a prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n but_o in_o its_o prevalency_n when_o place_v in_o such_o circumstance_n as_o it_o at_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v and_o when_o man_n of_o mean_a birth_n and_o education_n as_o have_v already_o be_v observe_v do_v without_o force_n or_o fraud_n on_o the_o sudden_a make_v so_o many_o proselyte_n to_o a_o religion_n which_o be_v so_o direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o opinion_n to_o which_o the_o world_n have_v be_v so_o long_o accustom_v a_o religion_n which_o be_v likely_a to_o bring_v such_o great_a inconvenience_n upon_o those_o who_o embrace_v it_o this_o indeed_o be_v very_o remarkable_a and_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o nothing_o but_o the_o power_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v only_o able_a to_o bring_v about_o so_o wonderful_a a_o effect_n in_o a_o word_n man_n be_v often_o guide_v by_o fancy_n prejudice_n and_o interest_n than_o by_o reason_n make_v they_o more_o capable_a of_o error_n than_o of_o truth_n and_o when_o they_o have_v once_o receive_v it_o not_o only_o unwilling_a to_o part_v with_o it_o but_o zealous_a to_o propagate_v it_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v the_o agreeableness_n of_o any_o doctrine_n to_o their_o wicked_a lust_n and_o affection_n be_v most_o likely_a to_o win_v upon_o they_o the_o craft_n and_o cunning_n of_o those_o who_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v may_v 〈◊〉_d easy_o mislead_v unstable_a mind_n into_o gross_a mistake_v before_o they_o be_v aware_a 〈…〉_o force_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o present_a preferment_n or_o the_o hope_n of_o it_o may_v make_v they_o profess_v what_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a and_o then_o seek_v for_o reason_n to_o defend_v it_o since_o than_o there_o be_v so_o many_o thing_n beside_o truth_n which_o may_v induce_v man_n to_o admit_v any_o doctrine_n the_o bare_a admit_v of_o it_o though_o never_o so_o universal_o can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o or_o of_o the_o church_n that_o teach_v it_o god_n have_v endue_v we_o with_o a_o capacity_n of_o find_v out_o truth_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o have_v make_v we_o fallible_a creature_n and_o liable_a to_o be_v impose_v upon_o so_o that_o it_o stand_v we_o in_o hand_n to_o be_v aware_a how_o we_o be_v deceive_v and_o the_o more_o care_n we_o take_v in_o a_o concern_n of_o this_o nature_n the_o more_o we_o discover_v our_o own_o sincerity_n and_o zeal_n for_o truth_n but_o let_v there_o be_v never_o such_o clear_a discovery_n thereof_o it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n wilful_o to_o shut_v our_o eye_n against_o they_o nay_o when_o we_o have_v adhere_v to_o truth_n for_o some_o time_n we_o may_v be_v tempt_v either_o whole_o to_o forsake_v it_o or_o to_o intermingle_v gross_a error_n with_o it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v as_o improper_a to_o conclude_v the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o or_o of_o the_o church_n that_o profess_v it_o as_o that_o any_o cause_n be_v just_a because_o successful_a such_o be_v god_n infinite_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n that_o as_o he_o do_v oftentimes_o bless_v with_o unexpected_a success_n a_o honest_a and_o just_a design_n and_o they_o who_o be_v sagacious_a in_o trace_v the_o footstep_n of_o providence_n do_v easy_o discover_v it_o so_o do_v he_o likewise_o frequent_o exert_v his_o power_n after_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o truth_n but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n as_o he_o often_o permit_v a_o unjust_a design_n to_o prevail_v and_o prosper_v so_o likewise_o do_v he_o suffer_v error_n to_o multiply_v and_o increase_v and_o when_o he_o do_v at_o any_o time_n exert_v his_o power_n after_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o truth_n he_o still_o deal_v with_o man_n as_o with_o rational_a creature_n so_o that_o such_o his_o power_n may_v be_v resist_v nay_o may_v be_v so_o far_o resist_v as_o may_v make_v he_o punish_v with_o infatuation_n such_o their_o resistance_n as_o he_o serve_v the_o pharisee_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o obstinacy_n who_o eye_n he_o blind_v and_o who_o heart_n he_o harden_a 41._o john_n 12.40_o 41._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n nor_o understand_v with_o their_o heart_n and_o be_v convert_v and_o as_o happen_v to_o those_o who_o the_o apostle_n make_v mention_n of_o who_o because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v 11._o 2_o thess_n 2.10_o 11._o god_n send_v strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v a_o lie._n since_o therefore_o such_o be_v the_o temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o mankind_n as_o to_o be_v daily_o subject_a to_o error_n and_o to_o be_v liable_a by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n to_o be_v at_o last_o harden_v in_o they_o nothing_o can_v with_o any_o certainty_n be_v determine_v concern_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o church_n from_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o it_o 3._o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o this_o note_n for_o the_o history_n of_o all_o age_n make_v it_o evident_a what_o a_o influence_n error_n have_v often_o have_v upon_o man_n mind_n and_o that_o although_o truth_n may_v have_v happen_v sometime_o to_o have_v prevail_v yet_o that_o it_o have_v be_v as_o often_o refuse_v and_o gross_a and_o most_o impious_a opinion_n prefer_v before_o it_o how_o soon_o be_v our_o first_o parent_n when_o their_o mind_n be_v in_o their_o great_a strength_n and_o vigour_n and_o not_o as_o yet_o bias_v by_o any_o misapprehension_n of_o thing_n 6._o gen._n 3.5_o 6._o by_o the_o cunning_a artifices_fw-la of_o satan_n tempt_v to_o believe_v a_o lie_n after_o which_o first_o and_z grand_a mistake_n how_o do_v their_o whole_a stock_n degenerate_a when_o every_o imagination_n of_o man_n heart_n be_v evil_a 6._o gen._n 6.5_o 6._o it_o repent_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o have_v make_v man_n on_o the_o earth_n afterward_o god_n choose_v to_o himself_o out_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n a_o peculiar_a people_n and_o to_o secure_v they_o against_o the_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n of_o those_o who_o dwell_v near_o they_o he_o give_v they_o particular_a statute_n which_o by_o threat_n and_o promise_n and_o mighty_a wonder_n which_o he_o wrought_v for_o they_o he_o oblige_v they_o to_o observe_v yet_o how_o soon_o do_v they_o forget_v god_n and_o turn_v after_o idol_n so_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ahab_n according_a to_o god_n own_o account_n there_o be_v but_o 7000_o who_o have_v not_o bow_v unto_o baal_n if_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n have_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o do_v not_o see_v why_o the_o priest_n of_o baal_n have_v not_o as_o much_o reason_n at_o that_o time_n to_o have_v insist_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o romish_a priest_n can_v have_v now_o at_o our_o saviour_n come_v the_o pharisee_n have_v infect_v the_o whole_a nation_n with_o their_o tradition_n and_o so_o obstinate_o do_v they_o adhere_v to_o they_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o many_o miracle_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v wrought_v for_o they_o notwithstanding_o the_o holiness_n of_o his_o life_n and_o conversation_n few_o believe_v on_o he_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o isaiah_n make_v mention_v joh._n 12.38_o lord_n who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n of_o which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o complain_v john_n 5.43_o i_o be_o come_v in_o my_o father_n name_n and_o you_o receive_v i_o not_o if_o another_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n he_o you_o will_v receive_v and_o in_o the_o 11_o of_o st._n matthew_n ver_fw-la 20_o etc._n etc._n he_o do_v most_o severe_o upbraid_v the_o city_n wherein_o most_o of_o his_o mighty_a work_n be_v do_v because_o they_o repent_v not_o and_o do_v open_o declare_v that_o it_o will_v be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o for_o they_o if_o any_o doctrine_n be_v likely_a to_o have_v be_v efficacious_a one_o will_v have_v think_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o teach_v by_o himself_o have_v be_v so_o and_o yet_o we_o find_v that_o no_o prophet_n be_v ever_o less_o respect_v than_o he_o be_v even_o among_o his_o own_o countryman_n the_o same_o thing_n happen_v likewise_o to_o st._n
paul_n as_o we_o read_v act_v 13.45_o and_o act._n 28.24_o etc._n etc._n after_o christianity_n have_v for_o above_o 300_o year_n be_v struggle_v to_o get_v ground_n in_o the_o world_n how_o strange_o do_v arianism_n on_o the_o sudden_a prevail_v against_o it_o one_o will_v have_v think_v that_o after_o people_n have_v for_o some_o time_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n they_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v easy_o tempt_v to_o embrace_v so_o gross_a a_o error_n but_o yet_o such_o be_v the_o efficacy_n of_o this_o heresy_n that_o as_o theodoret_n relate_v the_o emperor_n constantius_n in_o a_o discourse_n with_o liberius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n urge_v it_o as_o a_o argument_n against_o his_o intercession_n on_o behalf_n of_o athanasius_n pray_v say_v he_o how_o big_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v you_o 16._o theod._n lib._n 2._o hist_o eccl._n c._n 16._o that_o you_o alone_o pretend_v to_o stand_v up_o for_o a_o wicked_a man_n so_o he_o call_v athanasius_n and_o to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o the_o bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v a_o good_a argument_n that_o he_o immediate_o reply_v the_o true_a faith_n lose_v nothing_o by_o my_o be_v alone_o for_o there_o be_v former_o but_o three_o find_v who_o resist_v the_o king_n commandment_n 3.18_o dan._n 3.18_o neither_o do_v the_o same_o heresy_n prevail_v only_o at_o home_n among_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n but_o be_v likewise_o victorious_a abroad_o among_o the_o idolatrous_a nation_n of_o which_o the_o same_o author_n give_v we_o a_o notable_a instance_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o one_o vlphilas_o a_o bishop_n of_o great_a authority_n among_o the_o goth_n ult_n theod._n lib._n 3._o c._n ult_n be_v corrupt_v by_o eudoxius_n persuade_v that_o whole_a nation_n to_o embrace_v it_o about_o 300_o year_n after_o so_o general_a a_o defection_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n by_o arianism_n the_o impostor_n mahomet_n arise_v 718._o paulus_n aemyl_n l._n 2._o de_fw-la gestis_fw-la francorum_fw-la calvis_fw-la chronol_n ab_fw-la ann._n 631_o ad_fw-la an._n 718._o who_o doctrine_n in_o the_o space_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n overrun_v a_o great_a part_n both_o of_o the_o east_n and_o south_n and_o do_v continue_v so_o far_o to_o prevail_v that_o when_o brerewood_n make_v the_o computation_n of_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v it_o he_o reckon_v they_o to_o be_v six_o part_n of_o thirty_o into_o which_o he_o suppose_v 14._o brerewood_n inquiry_n c._n 14._o the_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v divide_v whereas_o he_o allot_v but_o five_o part_n to_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o christian_n of_o what_o denomination_n soever_o as_o to_o this_o particular_a the_o cardinal_n urge_v that_o mahumetanism_n be_v propagate_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o not_o by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o doctrine_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o assertion_n beside_o that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o little_a reason_n the_o cardinal_n have_v to_o make_v this_o objection_n and_o that_o mahomet_n must_v have_v first_o convert_v those_o by_o his_o doctrine_n who_o he_o afterward_o make_v use_n of_o to_o convert_v other_o by_o force_n i_o shall_v set_v down_o this_o remarkable_a instance_n whereby_o it_o will_v manifest_o appear_v how_o much_o the_o mahometan_a missionary_n even_o without_o the_o assistance_n of_o any_o outward_a force_n may_v sometime_o prove_v too_o hard_o for_o the_o roman_a one_o bati_fw-la king_n of_o the_o tartar_n have_v waste_v the_o christian_a territory_n return_n into_o scythia_n leave_v all_o europe_n in_o a_o great_a consternation_n pope_n innocent_a the_o four_o in_o the_o year_n 1246_o from_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n send_v a_o company_n of_o religious_a man_n a_o long_a journey_n to_o he_o to_o exhort_v he_o to_o worship_v the_o one_o live_a and_o true_a god_n and_o his_o only_a son_n jesus_n christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o abstain_v from_o shed_v christian_n blood._n when_o the_o tartar_n have_v hear_v the_o pope_n request_n he_o promise_v for_o five_o year_n not_o to_o trouble_v the_o christian_n 25._o laur._n surii_fw-la comment_fw-fr p._n 25._o but_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o pope_n messenger_n be_v go_v some_o saracen_n come_v exhort_v the_o tartar_n to_o embrace_v the_o mahometan_a sect_n rather_o than_o christianity_n and_o what_o they_o say_v have_v such_o effect_n especial_o upon_o the_o emperor_n that_o they_o embrace_v mahometanism_n and_o keep_v to_o it_o still_o in_o this_o case_n the_o two_o doctrine_n have_v very_o fair_a play_n for_o the_o tartar_n be_v prejudice_v on_o neither_o side_n neither_o can_v any_o force_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o compel_v they_o to_o receive_v one_o doctrine_n more_o than_o the_o other_o if_o either_o have_v the_o advantage_n it_o be_v that_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o that_o have_v get_v the_o start_n but_o be_v soon_o whole_o reject_v and_o the_o other_o have_v ever_o since_o be_v embrace_v be_v not_o those_o instance_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v sufficient_a to_o show_v what_o little_a judgement_n can_v be_v make_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o church_n from_o the_o reception_n which_o its_o doctrine_n have_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o world_n i_o may_v here_o add_v the_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n account_n heretic_n frumentius_n send_v by_o athanasius_n convert_v the_o indian_n moses_n a_o alexandrian_a monk_n the_o saracen_n and_o concern_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o moscovite_n paulus_n jovius_n thus_o speak_v above_o five_o hundred_o year_n since_o say_v he_o moscovit_fw-la de_fw-fr legatione_fw-la moscovit_fw-la the_o moscovite_n worship_v the_o heathen_a god_n jupiter_n etc._n etc._n but_o then_o be_v they_o first_o initiate_v in_o the_o christian_a rite_n when_o the_o greek_a bishop_n out_o of_o a_o inconstant_a temper_n begin_v to_o dissent_v from_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o it_o so_o happen_v that_o the_o moscovite_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o with_o a_o most_o hearty_a belief_n follow_v those_o religion_n rite_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o their_o greek_a teacher_n i_o may_v likewise_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o great_a efficacy_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n which_o in_o the_o space_n of_o fifty_o year_n when_o bishop_n jewel_n set_v out_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o apology_n notwithstanding_o the_o great_a opposition_n which_o have_v be_v make_v against_o it_o have_v overrun_v whole_a nation_n 36._o defence_n of_o apol._n p._n 36._o and_o mighty_o prevail_v even_o in_o those_o kingdom_n where_o the_o prince_n and_o governor_n be_v still_o popish_a the_o distinction_n which_o bellarmin_n make_v that_o heretic_n do_v not_o convert_v man_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n 12._o bill_n de_fw-fr not._n l._n 4._o c._n 12._o and_o that_o the_o goth_n be_v cheat_v into_o arianism_n that_o they_o pervert_v catholic_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o if_o by_o heretic_n man_n may_v be_v convert_v or_o cheat_v into_o what_o be_v false_a if_o catholic_n may_v be_v so_o easy_o pervert_v then_o the_o effect_n which_o any_o doctrine_n have_v upon_o man_n mind_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o their_o be_v member_n of_o a_o true_a church_n who_o profess_v it_o if_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o who_o be_v convert_v have_v receive_v be_v a_o true_a doctrine_n this_o indeed_o be_v a_o good_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o stand_v and_o fall_v by_o it_o but_o their_o bare_a conversion_n be_v no_o note_n at_o all_o because_o as_o to_o its_o be_v receive_v or_o not_o receive_v error_n have_v have_v the_o same_o fate_n in_o the_o world_n as_o truth_n itself_o have_v have_v and_o of_o this_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o be_v enough_o sensible_a who_o have_v forget_v what_o he_o have_v make_v to_o be_v the_o nine_o note_n of_o the_o church_n do_v repeat_v in_o a_o oration_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o controversy_n this_o objection_n of_o the_o reformist_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a say_v they_o that_o that_o doctrine_n shall_v not_o be_v from_o god_n 1593._o orat._n in_o scholis_fw-la habita_fw-la edit_fw-la in._n 8o._o ingolst_n 1593._o which_o in_o so_o short_a time_n have_v overrun_v so_o many_o people_n province_n and_o kingdom_n and_o then_o make_v this_o answer_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o philosophise_v after_o this_o manner_n we_o shall_v have_v much_o more_o reason_n to_o wonder_v why_o the_o alcoran_n of_o mahomet_n in_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v so_o easy_o prevail_v have_v thus_o in_o the_o general_a show_v that_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v so_o but_o yet_o that_o i_o may_v further_o show_v what_o little_a reason_n that_o church_n of_o all_o
other_o have_v to_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v the_o character_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n i_o desire_v in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o these_o follow_v particular_n may_v be_v consider_v 1._o that_o although_o we_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o many_o error_n and_o mistake_v yet_o we_o allow_v it_o to_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n now_o this_o very_a mixture_n of_o truth_n may_v perhaps_o be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o make_v proselyte_n but_o than_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v but_o that_o such_o proselyte_n may_v likewise_o have_v embrace_v the_o error_n which_o be_v mix_v with_o it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o truth_n itself_o the_o indian_n who_o conversion_n to_o the_o romish_a faith_n i_o shall_v speak_v of_o afterward_o be_v not_o so_o void_a of_o reason_n but_o that_o if_o they_o compare_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o conqueror_n with_o their_o own_o worship_n they_o may_v be_v persuade_v to_o embrace_v the_o former_a rather_o than_o adhere_v still_o to_o the_o latter_a and_o although_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o be_v but_o half_o convert_v to_o the_o truth_n yet_o it_o be_v better_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v thus_o than_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v convert_v at_o all_o for_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o be_v much_o near_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o whole_a truth_n than_o they_o be_v former_o which_o be_v a_o great_a advantage_n and_o therefore_o we_o reckon_v those_o but_o a_o ill_a sort_n of_o protestant_n who_o will_v rather_o have_v man_n turk_n and_o infidel_n than_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o conversion_n of_o never_o so_o many_o to_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o argument_n of_o its_o not_o be_v a_o corrupt_a church_n as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o maintain_v such_o gross_a error_n as_o it_o do_v although_o accompany_v with_o such_o a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n as_o may_v be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o bring_v over_o such_o as_o have_v before_o little_a or_o no_o knowledge_n thereof_o 2._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n because_o it_o be_v so_o much_o alter_v from_o what_o it_o former_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o the_o saint_n afterward_o new_a doctrine_n insensible_o creep_v into_o and_o be_v receive_v by_o that_o church_n and_o at_o last_o matter_n come_v to_o be_v settle_v as_o we_o now_o find_v they_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n this_o have_v be_v often_o clear_v by_o learned_a man_n and_o in_o some_o of_o those_o discourse_n which_o have_v of_o late_o be_v write_v etc._n barrow_n of_o the_o pope_n suprem_fw-la discourse_v of_o transub_v disc_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o the_o saint_n disc_n of_o commun_n in_o one_o kind_n vindicat._n of_o the_o answ_n to_o some_o late_a paper_n etc._n etc._n some_o of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n have_v be_v trace_v step_n by_o step_n and_o the_o manner_n now_o they_o come_v to_o be_v receive_v set_v down_o and_o in_o other_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v compare_v with_o herself_o and_o what_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v be_v show_v to_o be_v quite_o another_o thing_n from_o what_o be_v hold_v some_o age_n ago_o now_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o thing_n that_o be_v different_a shall_v be_v the_o distinguish_a character_n of_o that_o which_o be_v always_o the_o same_o since_o than_o i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v ready_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v always_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n thereof_o since_o in_o some_o age_n those_o doctrine_n have_v prevail_v in_o it_o which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o which_o have_v prevail_v in_o other_o 3._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n where_o those_o who_o embrace_v it_o be_v hinder_v from_o thorough_o examine_v it_o for_o without_o a_o thorough_a examination_n it_o never_o can_v be_v right_o understand_v and_o what_o efficacy_n can_v it_o have_v upon_o his_o mind_n who_o do_v not_o right_o understand_v it_o now_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n exact_v of_o the_o member_n of_o her_o communion_n a_o tame_a submission_n to_o and_o compliance_n with_o whatever_o she_o propose_v to_o their_o belief_n and_o practice_n and_o by_o forbid_v they_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n she_o take_v from_o they_o the_o use_n of_o that_o rule_n whereby_o they_o be_v to_o judge_n of_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o her_o proposal_n how_o then_o can_v the_o reception_n of_o her_o doctrine_n be_v a_o note_n of_o she_o be_v a_o true_a church_n when_o perhaps_o not_o one_o among_o a_o thousand_o of_o her_o member_n who_o receeive_v it_o be_v capable_a of_o understanding_n what_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v 4._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n where_o art_n and_o force_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o make_v it_o prevail_v for_o it_o be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n for_o cunning_a deceiver_n to_o impose_v upon_o unstable_a soul_n and_o it_o must_v be_v a_o great_a courage_n and_o constancy_n of_o mind_n which_o can_v make_v man_n for-go_a father_n and_o mother_n house_n and_o land_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o sake_n of_o truth_n now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v take_v this_o course_n to_o propagate_v her_o doctrine_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v by_o some_o of_o she_o own_o member_n there_o be_v say_v erasmus_n 23._o erasmus_n in_o annot._n in_o mat._n 23._o those_o who_o after_o a_o new_a example_n make_v christian_n by_o force_n but_o whilst_o they_o pretend_v the_o propagation_n of_o religion_n they_o do_v in_o reality_n study_v the_o enlargement_n of_o riches_n and_o power_n not_o unlike_o these_o be_v those_o monk_n who_o inveigle_v other_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o their_o order_n and_o do_v use_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o cunning_a to_o ensnare_v such_o as_o be_v young_a and_o unskilful_a and_o who_o neither_o understand_v themselves_o nor_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o stapleton_n declare_v very_o free_o 1582._o stapleton_n epist_n dedic_n de_fw-fr oper_n justific_n edit_fw-la paris_n 1582._o eo_fw-la sane_fw-la loco_fw-la haereses_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n heresy_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o their_o gordian_a knot_n be_v not_o to_o be_v dissolve_v by_o art_n and_o industry_n but_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o alexander_n and_o the_o club_n of_o hercules_n be_v more_o fit_a to_o subdue_v they_o than_o the_o harp_n of_o apollo_n i_o may_v quote_v several_a other_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n but_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o inquisition_n in_o those_o place_n where_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o the_o extraordinary_a method_n which_o have_v of_o late_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o a_o neighbour_a nation_n to_o gain_v proselyte_n do_v sufficient_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v more_o depend_v upon_o something_o else_o than_o upon_o the_o efficacy_n of_o her_o doctrine_n for_o the_o make_n of_o convert_v which_o will_v more_o full_o appear_v if_o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o consider_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n which_o be_v fetch_v first_o from_o the_o scripture_n second_o from_o what_o happen_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n three_o from_o the_o particular_a instance_n which_o he_o give_v of_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v quote_v ps_n 19.7_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v perfect_a convert_v the_o soul_n and_o heb._n 4.12_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v quick_a and_o powerful_a and_o sharp_a than_o any_o two-edged_a sword_n pierce_v even_o to_o the_o divide_v asunder_o of_o soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o joint_n and_o marrow_n and_o be_v a_o discerner_n of_o the_o thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n it_o may_v be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o latter_a of_o these_o be_v by_o several_a expositor_n interpret_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o his_o doctrine_n 2._o that_o if_o they_o be_v both_o interpret_v of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o any_o doctrine_n yet_o that_o the_o efficacy_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o be_v whole_o internal_a as_o we_o before_o observe_v and_o consequent_o such_o as_o can_v be_v account_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o note_n of_o a_o church_n must_v be_v what_o any_o one_o can_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o 3._o suppose_v by_o these_o word_n
be_v plead_v to_o establish_v they_o all_o this_o upon_o supposal_n that_o all_o these_o pretend_a miracle_n be_v actual_o true_a but_o then_o three_o there_o be_v no_o tolerable_a ground_n of_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o most_o of_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o romanist_n do_v make_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o church_n the_o first_o instance_n of_o any_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o relic_n of_o a_o martyr_n be_v that_o story_n of_o the_o bone_n of_o babylas_n that_o martyr_n have_v be_v inter_v in_o daphne_n a_o suburb_n of_o antioch_n when_o julian_n the_o apostate_n come_v to_o consult_v apollo_n oracle_n in_o that_o place_n near_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o this_o martyr_n interment_n he_o can_v procure_v no_o answer_n upon_o this_o the_o oracle_n be_v conjure_v at_o least_o to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o this_o silence_n according_o it_z answer_v because_o the_o bone_n of_o babylas_n lay_v so_o near_o his_o temple_n i_o do_v not_o find_v this_o story_n call_v much_o into_o question_n by_o the_o grave_a author_n nor_o indeed_o can_v we_o much_o wonder_n that_o the_o devil_n shall_v for_o once_o give_v so_o open_a a_o deference_n to_o the_o remain_v of_o a_o holy_a man_n when_o by_o one_o such_o a_o act_n he_o have_v so_o effectual_o emprove_v his_o interest_n and_o kingdom_n to_o so_o great_a a_o advance_v of_o superstition_n afterward_o in_o all_o those_o fond_a devotion_n that_o have_v be_v since_o pay_v to_o the_o relic_n of_o pretend_a saint_n and_o all_o those_o lewd_a fable_n of_o innumerable_a miracle_n act_v at_o their_o shrine_n which_o probable_o have_v be_v coin_v upon_o this_o first_o occasion_n of_o babylas_n there_o be_v another_o story_n almost_o of_o as_o ancient_a a_o date_n and_o that_o be_v of_o st._n ambrose_n have_v by_o vision_n reveal_v to_o he_o where_o the_o bone_n of_o gervasius_n and_o protasius_n the_o martyr_n lay_v which_o he_o take_v up_o and_o after_o considerable_a miracle_n wrought_v such_o as_o cure_v a_o blind_a butcher_n etc._n etc._n he_o repose_v the_o venerable_a relic_n under_o the_o altar_n of_o a_o new_a church_n which_o he_o have_v then_o build_v and_o dedicate_v i_o be_o not_o willing_a to_o bring_v a_o question_n upon_o this_o neither_o as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o because_o i_o find_v it_o not_o reject_v by_o the_o best_a writer_n as_o well_o as_o tell_v by_o st._n ambrose_n himself_o and_o the_o reason_n of_o some_o miracle_n of_o that_o time_n may_v be_v in_o vindication_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n against_o the_o pestilence_n of_o arianism_n that_o rage_v so_o fierce_o at_o that_o time_n yet_o there_o be_v some_o circumstance_n that_o render_v it_o something_o suspicious_a as_o why_o that_o holy_a man_n shall_v think_v of_o not_o build_v or_o dedicate_a a_o new_a church_n unless_o he_o can_v be_v furnish_v with_o some_o relic_n there_o seem_v a_o good_a pretty_a tang_n of_o superstition_n in_o the_o very_a thought_n and_o then_o the_o bulk_n of_o those_o body_n when_o they_o be_v find_v they_o seem_v of_o a_o gygantick_a race_n few_o of_o which_o i_o presume_v be_v ever_o of_o a_o constitution_n for_o martyrdom_n invenimus_fw-la mirae_fw-la magnitudinis_fw-la viros_fw-la dvos_fw-la ut_fw-la prisca_fw-la aetas_fw-la ferebat_fw-la we_o find_v two_o man_n of_o wonderful_a bulk_n such_o as_o olden_a time_n be_v wont_a to_o produce_v 7._o produce_v ambr._n epist_n ad_fw-la marcel_n soror_fw-la l._n 7._o certain_o the_o age_n of_o decius_n wherein_o they_o suffer_v do_v not_o produce_v man_n of_o a_o much_o large_a size_n than_o the_o age_n of_o gratian_n and_o valentinian_n but_o still_o let_v this_o story_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v receive_v as_o true_a doubtless_o it_o have_v be_v follow_v in_o late_a age_n with_o thousand_o of_o the_o like_a kind_n that_o have_v be_v so_o prodigious_o ridiculous_a and_o improbable_a that_o several_a of_o the_o consider_a writer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o have_v profess_v their_o disdain_n at_o they_o and_o leave_v their_o censure_n upon_o they_o as_o plain_o false_a and_o impossible_a petrus_n abbas_n cluniacensis_fw-la have_v the_o wit_n and_o honesty_n even_o in_o the_o xiith_o age_n to_o complain_v of_o these_o tale_n nosti_fw-la quantum_fw-la i_o pigeant_fw-la falsa_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la cantica_fw-la 89._o cantica_fw-la petr._n abbas_n cluniacens_n l._n 5._o epist_n 89._o etc._n etc._n you_o know_v how_o irksome_a these_o false_a hymn_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v to_o i_o and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n add_v mendacia_fw-la ad_fw-la minus_fw-la 24_o canticum_fw-la id_fw-la citato_fw-la percurrens_fw-la animo_fw-la reperi_fw-la he_o find_v at_o least_o four_o and_o twenty_o lie_n in_o one_o hymn_n of_o benedict_n lindanus_n one_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n cite_v a_o bishop_n of_o lion_n say_v that_o he_o have_v correct_v the_o antiphonary_n amputatis_fw-la quae_fw-la superflua_fw-la levia_fw-la falsa_fw-la blasphema_fw-la phantastica_fw-la multa_fw-la videbantur_fw-la have_v cut_v off_o many_o thing_n which_o seem_v superfluous_a trivial_a false_a blasphemous_a and_o fantastical_a and_o then_o add_v of_o his_o own_o that_o if_o that_o bishop_n have_v live_v to_o see_v the_o missal_n in_o his_o day_n deum_fw-la immortalem_fw-la quo_fw-la ea_fw-la nomine_fw-la pingeret_fw-la good_a god_n by_o what_o name_n will_v he_o have_v describe_v they_o 3._o they_o lindan_n de_fw-fr interpretandis_fw-la scripture_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o ludovicus_n vives_z another_z of_o their_o own_o author_n speak_v of_o their_o golden_a legend_n quam_fw-la indigna_fw-es divis_n &_o hominibus_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la historia_fw-la etc._n etc._n how_o unworthy_a either_o of_o saint_n or_o man_n be_v that_o history_n which_o i_o know_v not_o why_o they_o shall_v call_v the_o golden_a legend_n when_o it_o be_v write_v by_o a_o man_n of_o a_o iron_n forehead_n and_o leaden_a understanding_n artis_fw-la understanding_n lud._n viu._n in_o fine_a lib._n 2._o the_o corrupt_a artis_fw-la we_o be_v tell_v also_o by_o melchior_n canus_n that_o he_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o even_o their_o best_a writer_n especial_o in_o describe_v the_o miracle_n of_o the_o saint_n have_v gather_v up_o scatter_v rumour_n and_o transfer_v they_o to_o posterity_n in_o their_o write_n herein_o too_o much_o indulge_v themselves_o or_o the_o ordinary_a sort_n of_o believer_n who_o they_o suppose_v not_o only_o ready_a to_o believe_v but_o also_o vehement_o desirous_a of_o such_o miracle_n 9_o miracle_n quanquam_fw-la negare_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la viros_fw-la aliquando_fw-la gravissimos_fw-la etc._n etc._n melch._n can._n loc._n theol._n l._n 11._o c._n 9_o and_o of_o the_o legend_n he_o declare_v he_o can_v not_o to_o this_o day_n meet_v with_o one_o story_n that_o he_o can_v allow_v this_o be_v the_o opinion_n and_o esteem_v the_o wise_a author_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v leave_v behind_o they_o of_o such_o story_n as_o these_o however_o father_n cressy_a in_o his_o church-history_n in_o this_o very_a age_n of_o we_o and_o in_o a_o nation_n where_o there_o seem_v no_o inclination_n to_o such_o unreasonable_a credulity_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o lick_v up_o the_o spital_n of_o the_o idle_v monk_n and_o to_o avow_v the_o absurde_a of_o all_o their_o fiction_n the_o centuriator_n have_v take_v pain_n for_o several_a century_n both_o to_o reckon_v up_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v bring_v in_o and_o also_o in_o every_o age_n to_o affix_v the_o particular_a miracle_n that_o be_v pretend_v to_o justify_v those_o doctrine_n it_o may_v create_v a_o infinite_a nausea_n in_o the_o reader_n shall_v i_o follow_v that_o method_n or_o indeed_o examine_v those_o person_n and_o their_o miracle_n who_o the_o cardinal_n have_v range_v in_o order_n from_o the_o seven_o to_o the_o sixteenth_o age._n however_o 1_o as_o to_o the_o person_n who_o he_o make_v so_o famous_a for_o miracle_n i_o shall_v examine_v one_o or_o two_o to_o give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n because_o the_o cardinal_n have_v instance_a in_o some_o particular_o in_o confirmation_n of_o christ_n bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n i_o shall_v examine_v one_o or_o two_o of_o they_o too_o 1._o as_o to_o the_o person_n in_o the_o twelve_o age_n exstant_fw-la age_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr not._n eccles_n l._n four_o c._n 14._o romans_z pontificibus_fw-la addictissim_fw-la be_v pluribus_fw-la miraculis_fw-la claruit_fw-la quam_fw-la ullus_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la quorum_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la scriptae_fw-la exstant_fw-la the_o cardinal_n bring_v in_o s._n bernard_n who_o as_o he_o tell_v we_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o monk_n and_o most_o devout_o addict_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n that_o he_o be_v famous_a for_o more_o miracle_n than_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n who_o life_n be_v at_o present_a extant_a whereas_o if_o we_o
cardinal_n clear_o distinguish_v between_o these_o two_o notion_n his_o reader_n may_v easy_o have_v see_v how_o far_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o mark_n by_o which_o to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n viz._n so_o far_o as_o to_o do_v he_o and_o his_o cause_n no_o manner_n of_o service_n for_o in_o the_o latter_a sense_n it_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o be_v such_o a_o mark_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o those_o prophecy_n which_o concern_v christ_n show_v that_o jesus_n be_v he_o and_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god._n but_o then_o this_o light_n of_o prophecy_n come_v no_o other_o way_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n than_o as_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n or_o if_o you_o will_v call_v it_o so_o a_o mark_n of_o that_o doctrine_n the_o profession_n whereof_o make_v the_o church_n so_o that_o when_o we_o have_v make_v the_o best_a we_o can_v of_o this_o note_n the_o church_n be_v still_o to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o religion_n it_o profess_v though_o that_o religion_n be_v know_v to_o be_v divine_a as_o by_o other_o argument_n and_o testimony_n so_o also_o by_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o prophecy_n and_o yet_o even_o here_o we_o must_v be_v something_o cautious_a in_o lay_v down_o the_o fulfil_n of_o prediction_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n for_o there_o be_v some_o prophecy_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o in_o part_n have_v be_v and_o will_v in_o time_n be_v full_o accomplish_v by_o such_o person_n who_o doctrine_n we_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o follow_v for_o antichrist_n be_v foretell_v as_o well_o as_o christ_n and_o when_o he_o come_v and_o fulfil_v all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v he_o so_o long_o before_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o those_o prediction_n be_v a_o mark_n upon_o he_o not_o that_o we_o shall_v receive_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v reject_v he_o and_o his_o doctrine_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o bare_o the_o fulfil_n of_o prophecy_n but_o of_o such_o prophecy_n only_o as_o describe_v the_o character_n of_o that_o person_n who_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o hearken_v to_o and_o to_o obey_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o be_v not_o unwilling_a to_o admit_v the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n though_o it_o be_v a_o very_a improper_a way_n of_o speak_v since_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o which_o be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a doctrine_n come_v to_o be_v the_o proper_a note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v one_o of_o those_o argument_n by_o which_o the_o doctrine_n be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v divine_a but_o this_o way_n of_o mark_v for_o the_o church_n be_v very_o uncomfortable_a to_o the_o cardinal_n friend_n because_o it_o will_v force_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n that_o make_v the_o religion_n but_o the_o religion_n that_o make_v the_o church_n he_o therefore_o find_v no_o advantage_n to_o his_o cause_n by_o this_o notion_n of_o prophetic_a light_n whole_o insist_o upon_o the_o former_a and_o make_v the_o gift_n of_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v to_o be_v one_o note_v of_o the_o church_n and_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o show_v it_o in_o his_o own_o and_o will_v not_o allow_v it_o to_o be_v in_o any_o other_o so_o that_o these_o two_o thing_n must_v come_v under_o examination_n i._o whether_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n ii_o if_o it_o be_v whether_o he_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o and_o no_o other_o i._o whether_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o cardinal_n offer_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v by_o three_o argument_n huddle_v up_o together_o which_o be_v distinguish_v be_v these_o 1._o that_o as_o christ_n promise_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n so_o he_o also_o promise_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n to_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o none_o know_v future_a contingency_n but_o god_n only_o 3._o that_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n if_o a_o prophet_n foretell_v any_o thing_n and_o it_o do_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o all_o this_o will_v amount_v to_o 1._o christ_n promise_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n to_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o as_o miracle_n notwithstanding_o such_o a_o promise_n be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o church_n so_o neither_o be_v prophecy_n such_o a_o note_n mere_o because_o it_o be_v also_o promise_v and_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o one_o as_o there_o be_v for_o the_o other_o for_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o be_v promise_v to_o last_v always_o in_o the_o church_n and_o we_o have_v be_v tell_v sufficient_o that_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o bellarmin_n himself_o must_v be_v character_n that_o be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o now_o the_o place_n by_o he_o produce_v be_v so_o far_o from_o prove_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n shall_v flourish_v in_o every_o age_n that_o there_o be_v pregnant_a intimation_n in_o it_o of_o the_o contrary_n he_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o prediction_n of_o joel_n apply_v by_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o church_n 16._o joel_n two_o 18._o act_n two_o 16._o and_o because_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o it_o thither_o we_o will_v go_v and_o not_o as_o he_o do_v take_v thing_n for_o grant_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v discourse_v but_o bring_v forth_o the_o text_n and_o see_v what_o argument_n it_o will_v afford_v the_o apostle_n as_o the_o chapter_n show_v speak_v with_o tongue_n to_o the_o amazement_n of_o all_o the_o stranger_n that_o hear_v they_o but_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n mock_v and_o say_v they_o be_v drink_v upon_o which_o peter_n light_o pass_v by_o that_o absurd_a reproach_n tell_v they_o that_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n joel_n and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o last_o day_n say_v god_n i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o your_o son_n and_o your_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v and_o your_o young_a man_n shall_v see_v vision_n and_o your_o old_a man_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o i_o will_v pour_v out_o in_o those_o day_n of_o my_o spirit_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v now_o though_o prophecy_n in_o the_o strict_a sense_n signify_v foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v yet_o it_o be_v here_o put_v for_o supernatural_a gift_n in_o general_n and_o particular_o for_o speak_v divine_a thing_n by_o inspiration_n and_o likewise_o for_o speak_v with_o new_a tongue_n which_o be_v undeniable_o evident_a from_o hence_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o wonderful_a thing_n of_o god_n in_o tongue_n they_o have_v never_o learn_v be_v by_o st._n peter_n affirm_v to_o be_v foretell_v in_o this_o prediction_n of_o joel_n so_o that_o the_o cardinal_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v very_o much_o afraid_a to_o make_v what_o be_v promise_v in_o joel_n a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o have_v make_v it_o unavoidable_o necessary_a for_o those_o of_o his_o communion_n the_o young_a man_n and_o the_o old_a man_n etc._n etc._n to_o speak_v with_o tongue_n by_o inspiration_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o unchurch_n his_o own_o party_n and_o therefore_o i_o imagine_v his_o follower_n will_v not_o follow_v he_o in_o this_o nor_o advance_v the_o promise_n in_o joel_n into_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o will_v rather_o say_v that_o the_o fulfil_n of_o it_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n and_o that_o the_o prediction_n of_o joel_n be_v accomplish_v though_o the_o same_o extraordinary_a gift_n be_v not_o continue_v in_o every_o age_n afterward_o 2._o he_o say_v that_o none_o know_v future_a contingency_n but_o god_n only_o which_o if_o it_o shall_v prove_v that_o a_o church_n be_v there_o where_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n be_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n where_o that_o gift_n be_v not_o unless_o it_o be_v a_o inseparable_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v all_o those_o future_a event_n make_v know_v to_o one_o or_o other_o in_o it_o which_o god_n only_o know_v our_o saviour_n say_v of_o that_o day_n and_o hour_n when_o himself_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n no_o man_n know_v but_o the_o father_n only_o do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o god_n must_v have_v reveal_v it_o to_o one_o or_o other_o in_o the_o church_n if_o because_o god_n only_o know_v future_a contingency_n
it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n must_v know_v they_o too_o by_o revelation_n from_o he_o than_o it_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o church_n must_v know_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o happen_v hereafter_o because_o it_o be_v god_n only_o that_o can_v communicate_v such_o knowledge_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o those_o who_o have_v any_o degree_n of_o it_o must_v necessary_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n because_o god_n only_o can_v give_v it_o neither_o be_v this_o true_a as_o i_o shall_v present_o show_v nor_o if_o it_o be_v can_v the_o gift_n of_o foretell_v some_o thing_n be_v for_o this_o reason_n a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n unless_o also_o the_o want_n of_o this_o gift_n shall_v be_v a_o demonstration_n against_o any_o communion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a can_v never_o be_v prove_v from_o hence_o that_o none_o but_o god_n can_v bestow_v it_o 3._o he_o add_v that_o in_o deut._n 18_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o for_o a_o note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n if_o a_o prophet_n foretell_v any_o thing_n and_o it_o do_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v now_o first_o this_o argument_n be_v very_o impertinent_a unless_o as_o lie_a prophecy_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n so_o false_a doctrine_n be_v also_o suppose_v a_o note_n of_o a_o false_a church_n which_o be_v a_o very_a dangerous_a supposition_n to_o a_o church_n that_o have_v rather_o be_v try_v by_o any_o other_o note_n than_o that_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o her_o doctrine_n for_o it_o seem_v if_o we_o can_v clear_o prove_v by_o any_o good_a argument_n that_o she_o profess_v false_a doctrine_n it_o follow_v without_o more_o to_o do_v that_o she_o be_v no_o true_a church_n but_o second_o it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o cardinal_n that_o false_a prophecy_n be_v a_o note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o note_n or_o rather_o a_o argument_n that_o the_o prophet_n have_v no_o commission_n from_o god_n to_o say_v that_o such_o a_o event_n shall_v come_v to_o pass_v nor_o do_v it_o follow_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o false_a prophet_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o catholic_n or_o a_o orthodox_n professor_n to_o tell_v a_o lie_n which_o i_o think_v no_o man_n will_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o say_v three_o much_o less_o be_v it_o say_v that_o a_o prophet_n foretell_v right_o a_o future_a contingent_a event_n be_v a_o note_n of_o true_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v necessary_a to_o make_v true_a prophecy_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n nay_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n there_o be_v express_a caution_n give_v not_o long_o before_o against_o be_v seduce_v into_o idolatry_n by_o true_a prediction_n if_o there_o arise_v among_o you_o a_o prophet_n or_o a_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n and_o give_v thou_o a_o sign_n or_o a_o wonder_n and_o the_o sign_n or_o the_o wonder_n come_v to_o pass_v whereof_o he_o speak_v unto_o he_o say_v 3._o deut._n xiii_o 1_o 2_o 3._o let_v we_o go_v after_o other_o god_n thou_o shall_v not_o hearken_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o that_o prophet_n for_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n prove_v you_o etc._n etc._n which_o show_v the_o confidence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n in_o pronounce_v so_o peremptory_o that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o true_a prediction_n among_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n unless_o perhaps_o for_o a_o testimony_n to_o our_o faith._n for_o this_o warn_v plain_o suppose_v that_o such_o prediction_n there_o will_v be_v not_o to_o confirm_v believer_n in_o the_o truth_n but_o to_o prove_v their_o constancy_n under_o a_o temptation_n to_o error_n they_o must_v indeed_o be_v false_a prophet_n as_o that_o signify_v false_a teacher_n who_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o gain_v authority_n to_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o to_o idolatrous_a practice_n by_o appeal_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o own_o prediction_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v to_o be_v true_a prophet_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o event_n which_o they_o will_v foretell_v and_o therefore_o to_o pretend_v that_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n never_o foretell_v any_o contingency_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o when_o providence_n design_v a_o far_a testimony_n to_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n be_v to_o speak_v gentle_o a_o wretched_a mistake_n and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o difficulty_n in_o this_o point_n than_o whether_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v god_n or_o bellarmin_n but_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o true_a prophecy_n among_o heathen_n beside_o those_o which_o be_v design_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n yet_o even_o these_o be_v a_o manifest_a argument_n that_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n nay_o they_o prove_v it_o more_o evident_o than_o any_o other_o prophecy_n can_v do_v because_o those_o prediction_n sure_o have_v the_o most_o unquestionable_a truth_n which_o be_v make_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o true_a doctrine_n of_o which_o kind_n that_o there_o have_v be_v several_a among_o the_o gentile_n seem_v very_o probable_a from_o those_o remain_v thereof_o which_o we_o meet_v with_o in_o virgil_n and_o tacitus_n ●_o eclog._n 4._o de_fw-fr divin_n ●_o not_o to_o insist_v upon_o that_o famous_a acrostic_n of_o sibylla_n erythraea_n in_o lactantius_n and_o eusebius_n which_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o cicero_n have_v see_v 47._o apol._n 2._o strom._n l._n 6._o ep._n 49._o qu._n 2._o de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 18._o c._n 47._o nor_o what_o justin_n martyr_n and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n say_v of_o the_o book_n of_o hystaspes_n i_o shall_v only_o note_v what_o st._n austin_n say_v of_o this_o master_n viz._n that_o christ_n be_v not_o foretell_v in_o israel_n only_o but_o in_o other_o nation_n also_o and_o that_o prediction_n concern_v christ_n may_v be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o book_n of_o those_o who_o be_v stranger_n to_o israel_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o incongruous_a to_o believe_v that_o this_o mystery_n be_v reveal_v to_o man_n of_o other_o nation_n which_o thing_n say_v he_o may_v be_v mention_v as_o advantage_n on_o our_o side_n over_o and_o above_o what_o be_v necessary_a now_o will_v any_o man_n say_v that_o these_o prediction_n do_v less_o show_v a_o prophetic_a light_n among_o the_o gentile_n because_o they_o be_v true_a with_o what_o conscience_n therefore_o can_v bellarmin_n shuffle_v off_o those_o famous_a prediction_n of_o balaam_n a_o heathen_a soothsayer_n etc._n numb_a xxiv_o 15_o etc._n etc._n concern_v christ_n to_o which_o he_o add_v those_o of_o the_o sibyl_n by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v a_o testimony_n to_o our_o faith_n as_o if_o the_o argument_n be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o strong_a that_o the_o gift_n of_o true_a prophecy_n be_v not_o confine_v within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n sure_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o old_a testament_n itself_o be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o prophecy_n 19_o 2_o pet._n i_o 19_o and_o that_o the_o main_a prediction_n thereof_o be_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o faith._n but_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o he_o strike_v off_o the_o true_a prediction_n of_o heathen_n from_o be_v a_o instance_n of_o prophetic_a light_n because_o forsooth_o they_o be_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n he_o must_v also_o set_v aside_o the_o best_a evidence_n of_o prophetic_a light_n within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o prediction_n whereof_o be_v no_o less_o but_o more_o than_o any_o other_o for_o a_o testimony_n to_o our_o faith._n as_o to_o the_o oracle_n of_o apollo_n which_o he_o do_v well_o to_o reject_v from_o be_v true_a prophecy_n we_o need_v not_o to_o offer_v they_o for_o the_o disparagement_n of_o this_o note_n of_o prophetic_a light_n since_o they_o may_v be_v deceitful_a and_o yet_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n neither_o be_v always_o in_o the_o church_n nor_o never_o among_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o it_o but_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o heretic_n be_v deceive_v as_o often_o as_o they_o will_v foretell_v any_o thing_n and_o that_o this_o appear_v from_o the_o false_a prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a thing_n that_o such_o a_o man_n shall_v think_v it_o enough_o to_o prove_v a_o conclusion_n so_o general_a by_o a_o particular_a instance_n he_o refer_v we_o to_o 1_o king_n 22._o where_o we_o find_v that_o ahab_n prophet_n speak_v by_o a_o lie_a spirit_n but_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o heretic_n never_o prophesy_v true_o there_o be_v some_o false_a prophet_n among_o the_o ten_o tribe_n upon_o their_o revolt_n therefore_o there_o never_o be_v any_o true_a one_o how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o of_o the_o lord_n prophet_n among_o they_o 4._o 1_o king._n xviii_o 4._o that_o at_o one_o time_n
this_o testimony_n of_o pliny_n tertullian_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o heathen_n will_v not_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o christian_n who_o they_o know_v to_o be_v guiltless_a but_o condemn_v it_o at_o all_o adventure_n and_o that_o the_o best_a emperor_n favour_v christianity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o worst_a all_o this_o however_o it_o may_v serve_v the_o common_a christianity_n do_v not_o make_v for_o the_o purpose_n for_o which_o the_o cardinal_n do_v produce_v it_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v as_o to_o what_o he_o mention_n of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o christian_a soldier_n from_o the_o epistle_n of_o m._n aurelius_n and_o if_o st._n antony_n st._n hilarion_n and_o st._n martin_n be_v reverence_v by_o the_o pagan_n i_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o imagine_v what_o service_n this_o will_v be_v to_o the_o cause_n the_o cardinal_n have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v or_o what_o prejudice_n it_o will_v be_v to_o we_o so_o that_o hitherto_o here_o be_v nothing_o say_v to_o the_o purpose_n in_o hand_n nothing_o say_v but_o what_o the_o protestant_n may_v as_o well_o apply_v to_o themselves_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n his_o next_o set_v of_o witness_n be_v jew_n if_o we_o examine_v they_o we_o shall_v only_o find_v that_o he_o have_v wise_o make_v choice_n of_o two_o great_a name_n but_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o speak_v one_o word_n to_o the_o purpose_n his_o author_n be_v josephus_n the_o historian_n and_o philo_n judaeus_n two_o incomparable_a author_n they_o be_v and_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v except_v against_o here_o be_v the_o mischief_n that_o neither_o of_o they_o have_v a_o syllable_n that_o make_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o reform_a however_o let_v we_o hear_v they_o speak_v and_o first_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o josephus_n the_o elder_a of_o the_o two_o have_v to_o say_v it_o be_v this_o that_o jesus_n be_v a_o wise_a man_n 6._o jofeph_n antiq._n jud._n l._n 18._o c._n 6._o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o call_v he_o a_o man_n that_o he_o be_v the_o effector_n of_o wondrous_a work_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o messiah_n by_o the_o way_n the_o cardinal_n make_v josephus_n speak_v nonsense_n as_o he_o report_v his_o testimony_n for_o he_o say_v not_o only_o that_o josephus_n do_v affirm_v christ_n to_o be_v more_o than_o a_o man_n but_o that_o he_o be_v true_o the_o messiah_n now_o josephus_n will_v never_o speak_v at_o this_o rate_n to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n be_v to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v christ_n for_o the_o messiah_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o same_o josephus_n affirm_v that_o jesus_n live_v at_o that_o time_n which_o he_o mention_n and_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n or_o messiah_n but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v i_o grant_v that_o josephus_n affirm_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n any_o far_a than_o it_o concern_v our_o common_a christianity_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v why_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v this_o in_o behalf_n of_o his_o church_n or_o what_o reason_n can_v be_v assign_v why_o protestant_n may_v not_o as_o well_o apply_v it_o to_o their_o own_o the_o common_a christianity_n be_v concern_v in_o such_o a_o testimony_n and_o so_o far_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v also_o but_o set_v aside_o that_o consideration_n and_o take_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v as_o distinct_a from_o and_o oppose_v to_o other_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n and_o i_o dare_v say_v i_o will_v produce_v testimony_n as_o pertinent_a as_o this_o of_o josephus_n out_o of_o any_o page_n of_o homer_n iliad_n or_o the_o commentary_n of_o julius_n caesar_n for_o what_o coherence_n be_v there_o between_o these_o two_o proposition_n josephus_n confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v in_o truth_n the_o cardinal_n way_n of_o argue_v let_v we_o hear_v next_o what_o philo_n judaeus_n have_v to_o say_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o it_o will_v be_v to_o i_o a_o wonderful_a thing_n to_o find_v philo_z say_v any_o thing_n in_o behalf_n of_o those_o christian_n when_o he_o never_o once_o mention_n the_o name_n of_o christian_a in_o all_o his_o work_n yet_o the_o cardinal_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o affirm_v that_o philo_n have_v write_v a_o famous_a book_n of_o the_o praise_n of_o those_o christian_n who_o live_v in_o egypt_n under_o st._n mark_v the_o evangelist_n after_o this_o his_o positive_a affirmation_n that_o philo_n have_v write_v such_o a_o book_n as_o be_v sensible_a that_o philo_n have_v no_o book_n that_o bear_v any_o such_o title_n he_o add_v the_o testimony_n of_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n that_o philo_n mean_v the_o christian_n and_o not_o any_o sect_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o the_o centuriator_n will_v have_v i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o worth_a my_o while_n to_o examine_v his_o ancient_a writer_n which_o he_o quote_v for_o his_o opinion_n contemplatiuâ_fw-la philo_z judae_n de_fw-fr vitâ_fw-la contemplatiuâ_fw-la i_o will_v for_o once_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o philo_n mean_v the_o christian_n of_o who_o he_o give_v so_o good_a a_o character_n under_o the_o title_n of_o therapeutae_n let_v it_o be_v so_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o business_n because_o those_o christian_n in_o egypt_n be_v good_a man_n and_o such_o as_o philo_n describe_v they_o must_v therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n the_o next_o witness_n which_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v be_v turk_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o alcoran_n it_o be_v say_v that_o christians_n be_v save_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o great_a of_o prophet_n and_o have_v the_o soul_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o sultan_n of_o egypt_n reverence_v st._n francis_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o catholic_n to_o what_o purpose_n all_o this_o be_v produce_v i_o do_v not_o understand_v i_o be_o sure_a it_o can_v serve_v that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o she_o stand_v separate_v from_o other_o christian_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o testimony_n in_o behalf_n of_o our_o common_a christianity_n than_o all_o christian_n be_v concern_v in_o it_o as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o alcoran_n will_v do_v the_o cardinal_n no_o service_n unless_o he_o can_v have_v produce_v some_o testimony_n peculiar_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o that_o may_v have_v justify_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n adoration_n of_o the_o host_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n or_o some_o of_o those_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n peculiar_a to_o that_o church_n the_o last_o set_a of_o witness_n produce_v by_o the_o cardinal_n he_o call_v heretic_n a_o man_n will_v think_v the_o case_n very_o desperate_a that_o need_v such_o witness_n but_o yet_o i_o find_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o disdain_v such_o as_o these_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o her_o side_n but_o in_o the_o present_a question_n we_o shall_v find_v they_o do_v that_o church_n no_o service_n the_o substance_n of_o what_o the_o cardinal_n allege_v be_v what_o follow_v viz._n that_o a_o arian_n king_n honour_v st._n benedict_n a_o catholic_n that_o luther_n when_o a_o heretic_n own_v that_o in_o the_o papacy_n be_v many_o good_a thing_n nay_o all_o that_o be_v good_a e._n g._n the_o true_a scripture_n baptism_n etc._n etc._n that_o calvin_n call_v bernard_n a_o pious_a writer_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n that_o another_o protestant_n acknowledge_v bernard_n dominic_n and_o francis_n to_o be_v holy_a man_n to_o which_o he_o add_v a_o passage_n of_o cochlaeus_fw-la who_o report_v a_o article_n of_o agreement_n wherein_o the_o protestant_a helvetian_n write_v that_o they_o will_v dismiss_v their_o confederate_n quiet_v as_o to_o their_o true_a undoubted_a and_o their_o catholic_n faith._n from_o all_o which_o i_o see_v not_o what_o he_o can_v collect_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o do_v honour_v every_o man_n that_o be_v good_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o this_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o we_o justify_v all_o her_o doctrine_n we_o own_o that_o they_o have_v the_o true_a scripture_n and_o sacrament_n but_o this_o do_v not_o justify_v their_o addition_n of_o apocryphal_a book_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o of_o more_o sacrament_n than_o be_v own_v to_o be_v strict_o so_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n we_o will_v allow_v that_o there_o have_v be_v pious_a and_o holy_a man_n of_o that_o church_n and_o be_v not_o scrupulous_a in_o call_v they_o by_o the_o name_n by_o which_o they_o be_v common_o